'I % £ AN -$ % %. ^> v' lis ^^ ** ++ V* v ' 4 -r \®y •\ i e a Q \ /- -. ,0o. Daniel Boone Alone in the Wilderness. SEE PAGE 259 OUR Western Border. ITS LIFE, FORAYS, SCOUTS, COMBATS, MASSACRES, RED CHIEFS, ADVENTURES. CAPTIVITIES, PIONEER WOMEN, ONE HUNDRED YEARS AGO; CONTAINING THE CREAM OF ALL THE RARE OLD BORDER CHRONICLER (NOW LONG OUT OF PRINT AND ALMOST IMPOSSIBLE TO PROCURE,) TO- GETHER WITH A LARGE AMOUNT OF FRESH AND ORIGINAL MATTER DERIVED FROM AUTHENTIC SOURCES, THE WHOLE WORK EMBRACING STRANGE AND THRILLING NARRATIVES OF CAPTIVITIES, DARING DEEDS, DESPERATE CONFLICTS, EXCITING ADVENTURES, PER- SONAL PROWESS, AND AIMING, BY JUDICIOUS SELECTIONS, TO PRESENT THE FULLEST, MOST VARIED, AND MOST RELIABLE PORTRAYAL OF BORDER STRUGGLE AND ADVENTURE YET PUBLISHED, ••TVirtli is Stranger tiian -Fiction, CAREFULLY WRITTEN AND COMPILED BY Charles McKnight, Author of "Old Port Duquesne" and "Simon Girty." ILLUSTRATED BY THE VERY BEST ARTISTS. C. McCURDV &, CO., I>H IJL, ADELPHI A, CHICAGO and ST. LOUIS. 1886. Mi Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1875, by chaeles Mcknight, In the office of the Librarian of Congress, "Washington, D. C. TABLE OF CONTENTS. Chapter I. Iktroduction — Destruction of the Erie Tribe of Indians — Contrast Drawa between the French Canadian and the English Trader — Washington's First Visit to the Great West — Hq is hurled into the Allegheny and shot at by a Sav- age — Washington's First Campaign — The Surrender of Fort Necessity — Re- markable Adventures of Major Eobert Stobo — His Escape from Quebec and Daring Exploits — He Captures two Ships with all on Board — Braddock's Expe- dition against Fort Duquesne — The Character of Braddock and his Army — The Disastrous Battle of Braddocks Fields — Sir Peter Halket's Death — Braddock'3 Retreat and Death — Capture of Fort Duquesne — Colonel Grant's Defeat — Highland Eage — Strange Discovery by the young Sir Peter Halket of the Skeletons of Father and Brother — The Touching Story of Fanny Braddock — Remarkable Adventures of Colonel James Smith, Five Years a Captive among the Indians — Ducked in the River by three Squaws — Adopted into an Indian Tribe — Cunning of the Catawbas — Smith Lost in the Woods — Odd Ways of Hunting Bears, Foxes, Raccoons, &c. — Attempt to Run Down Horses — Scolded for Helping the Squaws — Habits of the Beaver — Smith Snowed Up and Lost — Singular Indian Customs — An Indian Drinking Frolic — Indian Deer Drive and Ring Hunt — Novel Fishing — Smith's Marriage — A Wilderness Hermit — He takes a British Fort — Captain Jack, the " Wild Hunter of the Ju- niata'' 1-111 Chapter II. The Conspiracy of Pontiac — First Mutterings of the Awful Storm — Pontiac's Subtlety — Machillimackinac Captured through a Game of Ball — The Trader Henry's Narrow Escapes from Death — Obstinate Defence of Presq' Isle Fort — Pontiac's Siege of Detroit — An Ojibwa Maid Reveals the Plot — Officers Captured — Anecdotes of Pontiac — A Thrilling Boat Scene — A Frightful Massacre — Capture of Forts — Fire Rafts — Old Major Campbell Killed — A Fierce Struggle at Bloody Run — A Dreadful Repulse — The Siege Abandoned — Death of the Mighty Pontiac — Guyasutha's Attack on Fort Pitt and Re- pulse — Ruse with a Stuffed Paddy — .Bouquet Comes to the Rescue — His Des- perate Battle of Bushy Run — He Penetrates into the Heart of the Indian Country — Touching Scenes on the Delivery of the Captives — The Desperate Battle of Point Pleasant — General Andrew Lewis — The Battle Rages — The Savages Retreat — Atrocious Murder of Cornstalk and his Son — The Murder of the Great Chief, Bald Eagle — Sketch of Logan, the Fam^/us Mingo Chief- Massacre of the Conestoga Indians 112-182 to Table of Contents. Chapter III. Lcfe on the Border — Manners and Customs of Western Pioneers- -The Titles to Lands and Hardships of Settlers — Hunting and Hunters of the Border —How Marriages were Conducted — Setting up Housekeeping — Strange Frolics —Pioneer Women and Their Duties — Tattling, Shirking and Thieving, and how Punished — Household Furniture and Customs — Indian Tracking and Fighting — Sports and Pastimes on the Border — Captivity of John McCullough and his Adventures among Savages — How he was Made Happy — An Indian Boy Shot and Killed and McCullough Suspected — Captive nearly Drowned — ■ A Squaw Whipped for Abusing Him — Novel Punishment — McCullough Es- capes from his Own Father — Captivity and Escape of the Bard Family — Hor- rible Death of Daniel McManimy by Torture — Wanderings in Search of a Lost Wife — Origin of the Indian Term "Long-Knives" — John Harris, Founder of Harrisburg, Pa. — Dr. Benjamin Franklin as a Commander — Con- rade Weiser and the Onondaga Chief — Border Forts, Stations and Block- Houses — A 'Singular Will Case on the Border — Sir William Johnson, Baronet — u A Fine old Irish Gentleman, all of the Olden Time " — Peculiar Educa- tion of Sir William's two Daughters — He Marries the Famous Molly Brant — A Wild Indian Girl— A late Visit to Johnson Hall and Castle 183-252 Chapter IV. Daniel Boone, Pioneer of Kentucky — Kentucky as it was in the Older^ Time — Boone Captured for the First Time and Escapes — Alone in the Wilder- ness — He Moves his Family West and Loses a Son — Capture of his Daughter and the Calloway Girls — His Fight with two Savages and Capture — Siege of Boonesborough — Indian Stratagems Foiled — Defeat of Captain Estill — A Well- Fought Action — Simon Girty's Desperate Attack on Bryant's Station — Hero- ism of the Kentucky Women — Kunning a Bloody Gauntlet — Girty Chaffed by Keynolds — Disastrous Battle of the Blue Licks — Boone's Son Killed — Thrill- ing Incidents — Keynolds' Capture — Hugh McGary's Fierce Character and Defence— Boone's Last Days— Touching Scenes—Marks out his own Grave— Two New Anecdotes of Boone — Kentucky Sports — Boone Barking Squirrels — Driving the Nail and Snuffing the Candle by Rifle — General Simon Kenton alias Butler — Thinks he is a Murderer — Herds of Elk and Buffalo — Hend- ricks Burnt — Kenton's Fight — Kenton Passes Through a Series of Extraordi- nary Adventures — He Tries a Mazeppa Kide — Escape and Recapture — Girty Intercedes and Saves his Friend— A Savage Axe Blow— Kenton meets Logan- Butler Changes his Name to Kenton— His Last Sorrowful Years— The Wetzel Family, Father and Five Sons — Lewis the Right Arm of the Wheeling Border —Martin Wetzel Captured and Kills three Savages — John Wetzel on a Horse- Stealing Expedition and Captures an Obstinate Savage — Jacob Wetzel and Simon Kenton Attack a Camp — Lewis Wetzel and his Dare-Devil Adven- tures — He Slays Three Savages in a Running Fight — Shoots a Red Gobbler and Attacks a Camp — Handcuffed by Harmar and Escapes — The border Rises to his Rescue — Thrilling Adventure 253-343 Table of Contents. Chapter V. The Zane Family who Settled Wheeling— Shooting Adventures- Major Samuel McColloch and his Famous Leap — Benjamin Logan and nil Heroic Deeds — Perilous Journey after Powder — Bowman's Singular Behavior —Murder of Moluntha by the Fierce Hugh McGary— Another Account — A Spirited Lad and how he Became Famous — His Komantic Death — Adventures of Captain Johnny — A Desperate Indian Duel — Captain William Hardin, Pioneer of Kentucky — Captain Bland Ballard and his Adventures — Exciting Adventure of " Big Joe Logston " — Jack Wells' Dream and What Came of It— Major Kobert Benham and his Strange Adventure — McConnel's Capture and Signal Revenge — Adventure of the Three Brothers McAfee — Bryant's and Hogan's Parties Assaulted by Indians — A Schoolmaster Attacked by a Wild Cat — David Morgan's Famous Combat with two Savages — Events from Dunmore's War to the Moravian Massacre — The Delaware Chiefs, Captains Pipe and White Eyes — The Tories, Girty, Elliott and McKee, Desert from Fort Pitt— Death of White Eyes— A Horrid Massacre 344-396 Chapter VI. God's Mighty Work in the Wilderness — King Pomoacon Destroys the Moravian Towns and Carries the Inhabitants Captive — Frightful Massacre ot Moravians at Gnadenhutten — The Converts told to Prepare for Death — Touching Scenes — Driven into two Slaughter Houses and Inhumanly Butch- ered — One Little Boy Saved — Slaughter Renewed at Smoky Island — Full Sketch of Simon Girty, the "White Savage" — He Marries the Beautiful Kate Malott — Captain Samuel Brady, the Daring Partisan Leader — His First Bold Scout to the Upper Sandusky — A Conflict at " Brady's Bend " — His Ad- venture with Phouts — Saves Himself by a Shrewd Device — A Wholesale Kill — Curing a " Sick Gun " — A Line Shot and Three Savages " Bagged " — The Lone Hunter's Revenge — A Dread Holocaust — Tracked by a Dog — An Indian Captured — "Brady's Leap" over the Cuyahoga River — His Trial, Marriage and Death — Andy Poe's Famous Fight with Big Foot — Only Reliable Account yet Published — The Two make a Desperate Effort to Drown Each Other — Poe's Fight with a Young Bull — A Revenge Thwarted — Colonel Crawford's Expedition against Sandusky— A Fight with General Daniel Morgan — Dis- astrous Defeat and Retreat, and Horrible Death by Torture — Dr. Knight's Escape — Slover's Capture and Mad Ride for Life — The Mysterious Major John Rose turns oui to be a Russian Nobleman ... „ 397-476 Chapter VII. General George Rogers Clark — His Heroic Deeds— Character of Border Warfare— Secret Advance on Kaskaskia — Singular Scenes — Big Gate Won Over — Chiefs Thrown into Irons — Extraordinary Scenes at a Council — Vin- cennes Retaken— In Great Peril— Strangest and Most Daring March on Record— Wading Through Deep Waters— Clark's Stratagems — Kentucky n Table of Contents. Sharp Shooting — Major Hay Trembles— Curious Incident — Fort Surrenders- Clark's Disappointments and Death — "The War Belt, a Legend of North Bend " — James Harrod, Pioneer Hunter and Indian Slayer — He Nurses a Wounded Indian — Combat and Escape of Peter Kennedy — Adventure oi Boone, related by himself 477-515 Chapter VIII. The Two Sieges of Fort Henry — Mason's and Ogle's Commands Cut to Pieces — Deplorable Ambuscade of Foreman's Party — Second Siege of Wheel- ing in 1782— A Wooden Monster— Betty Zane's " Gunpowder Exploit "—The Northwestern Campaign — Expedition of General Harmar — Singular Adven- ture of Johonnet — Desperate Combat — Disastrous Defeat of General St. Clair— Genera! Butler Killed — Prodigious Slaughter and Disgraceful Rout — The Ranger's Race for Life — Colonel Darke's Escape — Mad Anthony Wayne tries it and Wins— Battle of " Fallen Timbers "—Enemy Routed— Captain Wells and Robert McClellan, the Rangers, and their Thrilling Exploits — Singular Recovery of a Brother — Five Rangers Attack a Camp — McClellan Rescued by a Girl — More of McClellan 's Adventures — Alone in a Desert and Reduced to Starvation 516-570 Chapter IX. A Series op Thrilling Events — Adventures of May, Johnston, Flinn and Skyles — A Successful Decoy and Boat Capture — Exciting Chase and Re- pulse — Johnston Bothered by a Cow — The Game of u Nosey " — Two Children saved by Messhawa — Flinn Tortured — Wonderful Escape of Skyles — Miss Fleming's Sad Plight — Rescued by The Crane — Adventures of Ward, Calvin and Kenton — Ward Finds a Lost Brother — Desperate Attack on Hubbell's Boat — An Obstinate Resistance— A Brave Boy — Savage Boat Attack and Ter- rible Combat — An Obstinate Defence and Barren Victory — A Fierce Conflict by three Kentuckians — Thomas Marshall and James Girty — Captain Ward and the Fat Dutchman — Exciting Narrative of Van Campen 571-624 Chapter X. The Frightful Massacre of Wyoming — Catharine Montour alias Queen Esther — Fierce Attack of Hammond and the Bennetts — Frances Slocum, the Lost Sister — Revenge of Colonel John Moredock — Thrilling Adventure of Au- dubon, the Naturalist — Ogilvie's Contrary Adventure— Obstinate Combat of Higgins, the Ranger — Colter's Famous Race for Life — An Indian's Sagacity at Trailing — Bell's Conflict with three Savages — Western Emigration — Odd Scenes — Pack-Horses — Boating Life on the Western Waters— Mike Fink, the " Last of the Keelboatmen. " — Game and " Deer Drives " of the Olden Time —Captain Minter's Famous Bear Fight — How Muldrow Found his Next Neighbor — A Wild White Man and his Story — How Major Smith Recovered his Sweetheart — Jesse Hughes, the Mountain Hunter — Sad Death ol Captain Table of Contents. vii Van Buskirk — Massacre of the Purdy Family — Massacre of the Tush Family — Massacre of Captain Thomas and Family — Attack upon Kirkwood's Cabin — A " Perfect Devil " Kills Seven Indians — Levi Morgan's Stratagem for Lil« — Kiddled with Bullets and yet Escapes — A Handsome Squaw makes Love to Biggs — Cacasotte throws Fourteen Bobbers Overboard 625-683 Chapter XI. Pioneer Women— Their Trials and Heroism — Touching Narrative of Massy Harbison— Desperate Attack on Widow Scraggs' Cabins — Mrs. Merrill, the Terrible " Long-Knife " Squaw — Family of Mrs. Daviess Captured — A Rescue — Murder of the Two Misses Crow — Desperate Attack on the Cunning- barn's — Captivity and Wanderings of Mrs. Frances Scott — Bebecca Boone, and how Daniel Won Her — " Mad Ann Bailey," of West Virginia— The Beauti- ful and Dashing Louisa St. Clair — Mrs. Mason Kills One and Frightens a Score — Escape of Hannah Dennis — Mrs. Clendenin — Mrs. Cunningham At- tacks Two Indians — Heroic Defence by the Two Widows Cook — "That's John's Gun "—A Widow Won at Last — Euth Sevier marries a Shawnee Chief —The " Isaac and Rebecca " of West Virginia 684-719 Chapter XII. Pluck and Spirit op the Border Boys — Remarkable Exploit of the Johnson Boys — A Lad Kills a Red-Crested Gobbler — Capture of Two Boys and the Price Paid— Adventures of Five Kentucky Boys — Jonathan Alder Captured — His Strange Return — The Captivity of Two Little Brothers — Fran- cis Downing Saved by a Bear — Narrative of John Brickell's Captivity — Two Touching Instances of Indian Generosity— Adventures of Young James Ray — Four Hours under Fire and how Saved — How Readily Captive Boys became Indianized — Two Lads save the Life of a Girl — George Bozarth's Ruse and Escape — Two Boys in the Woods all Winter — A Boy Made to Slay Six Indians — Anecdotes of Indians 720-752 LIST OF ILLUSTRATIONS. Daniel Boone Alone in the Wilderness, - - Frontispiece. Young Washington Hurled into the Icy Allegheny, - -21 Major Halket Discovers Skeletons of Father and Brother, 67 Young Smith Ducked in the River by Squaws, - - - 76 Indian Maid Betraying Pontiac's Plot to Gladwyn, - 128 Recovery of Captive Child by a Mother, - - - - 159 Abduction of the Boone and Calloway Girls, - - 261 Simon Kenton Takes a Mazeppa Ride, 305 Lewis Wetzel Slays Three in a Running Fight, - - 329 Major Sam. McColloch's Famous Plunge, - - - - 350 Capt. Sam. Brady, the Daring Partisan Leader, - - 426 Andrew Poe's Famous Combat with Big Foot, - - - 445 Two Victims offered to appease Gen. Clark, - - 488 Mike Fink, the "Last of the Keelboatmen," - 658 A Pioneer Woman Makes desperate Work, - - 698 The Little Johnson Lads Kill their Captors, - - 722 PREFACE, The object of the following work is simple, and may be expressed in few words. We aim to exhibit to the present generation, a faithful and reliable portraiture of Western Frontier Life and Struggle. We confine ourselves ( hiefly to what may fitly be called the Heroic Age of the Border, embraced between Dunmore's War of 1774 and the Battle of Fallen Timbers, in 1794, when the power of the Western Confederation was forever crushed, and its coherence utterly destroyed by " Mad Anthony Wayne." Never since, or even including, the feudal times of the Robber Barons of Germany, or of the Moss Troopers of Scotland, has that stormy and turbulent period been excelled for deeds of personal prowess and of dauntless, unrecking courage. It really seems as if the constant environment and familiarity with perils the most instant and appalling, had begotten for them an utter contempt. The iron-hearted and steel-nerved woodsmen of the Border appear absolutely to have known no fear, and to have bidden a grim and unflinching defiance to all danger, come in whatever Protean shape it might. They even seemed to court it and to grow restive at its absence. As with Fitz James — If a path were dangerous known, The danger's self was lure alone. The cruel and furious warfare that ever existed between the jealous red pos- sessor and the resolute white invader of the Western soil, was one to the death and to the bitter end. It was, in fierceness and stubbornness, much like — and for the self-same reasons, too — that between God s wandering people and the nations beyond Jordan. Before them lay the promised Canaan — the " land flowing with milk and honey." They were bidden to go in and "possess it," and to smite the inhabitants thereof " hip and thigh." The contest was to be one of extermination to one side or the other — and the Jews won. k Preface. We have sought to avoid overloading our work with cumbrous detail, hut tt connect together chronologically a few jnly of the more salient and memorable of the Combats, Massacres and Captivities with which that tempestuous period actually bristles ; to sketch some of the more prominent actors who best illus- trate the spirit of that time, and to group together some representative facta and every-day occurrences, so as to give those of a far different age and occupa- tion some idea of the domestic and social life of the wilderness — the sports, perils and privations of our Western Border, one hundred years ago. The old and well-thumbed Border books of Pritts, Withers, Doddridge, De- Hass, McClung and McDonald — filled to repletion with the stirring ad- ventures or harrowing sufferings of the exposed and oft-smitten Border — have long been out of print and cannot now be obtained "for love or money." These we have patiently sifted — in many instances corrected — and herein essay to give the very cream of them all, adding much fresh and interesting inform- ation gleaned from our researches in this line, or furnished us by the de- scendants of the Pioneers, or by those who have made Border History a spe- cialty. It gives us pleasure, in this regard, to acknowledge our personal obli- gations to such enthusiastic and well-posted collectors as Lyman C. Draper, of Wisconsin ; Wills DeHass, of West Virginia ; Dr. W. A. Irvine, of Penn- sylvania; C. W. Butterfield, of Bucyrus, Ohio ; General L. V. Bierce, of Ak- ron, Ohio ; Messrs. Veech, Hampton, Craig and Schwartz, of Pittsburgh, and others, who have so cheerfully assisted us in our "labor of love." It is great pity that the simple and unlettered actors in the rude and event- ful old Border days recorded so little of their stirring deeds and conflicts, and that, hence, so much is now left to changing and confusing tradition. As one after another Pioneer has passed from the stage, the power of amending all this has been diminished. It is now, alas ! almost too late. What can yet be done, however, should speedily be done to rescue from oblivion the evanescent memories of days that are past; to supply existing deficiencies ; to correct the many errors which prevail, and to restore some degree of order to- the great confusion existing among Border Chronicles and Traditions. This is now so great as to amount, not only to marked discrepancies of fact, date and locality, but, in many instances, almost to positive contradictions. Such disorder rules as to justify, in a measure, the biting remark of that witty scoffer, Voltaire, that " History does not always lie." Preface. xi We have to do with a time and condition of our nation's progress so strange and of such marked peculiarity, that nothing like unto it can ever again oc- cur. It is said of Sir "Walter Raleigh, that when once engaged writing history, he saw a fracas occur just before him, but was so disgusted and discouraged Uy the different and contradictory accounts brought of it, th^t he tore h\t manuscript into fragments, remarking, in effect, that since it was so difficult to record the exact truth about events happening right before one's eye, how im- possible it must be to attain accuracy as to occurrences transpiring centuries be- fore. There is a pregnant truth in the anecdote, and each yearmake3 the task of amending and justifying our Border History and Traditions more difficult. In this duty each " picker up of unconsidered trifles " has his value, for it is of such stuff that history is made. We have striven to contribute our share ; taking pains to be correct; reject- ing all we knew to be false ; supplementing, where possible, what was insuffi- cient, and amending what was confusing and disjointed. While our aim is truth, we do not profess infallibility. If we can show through what perils, trials and privations our country has been won, we thereby show — and so attain the object of our work — how dearly prized it should be by all, and how sacred should be the memories of the old Pioneers and their families, who fought so heroically, suffered so patiently and endured so persistently, one hundred jwfvs INDEX, Page. A.laquippa, Queen 21 Alder, Jonathan, captured 725 His strange return 728 Anecdotes of Indians 748 Audubon, Thrilling adventure of, 636 Bailey, "Mad Ann," of TV. Ya... Bard Family, Captivity of. Bald Eagle,*Murder of Battle of Braddocks Fields Of Blue Licks Of Fallen Timbers Of Bushv Run Of Point Pleasant Of Bloody Hun.. Benham, Major, his adventure Bell, Sam'l, his deadly conflict Biggs, William, made love to by a handsome squaw Bingaman kills seven Indians Bloody Bun, Battle of. Blue Licks, Battle of. Boatinsr life on Western waters... He moves to Kentucky Left alone in the wilderness Daughter stolen off. Kills two savages At Battle of Blue Licks Son Israel killed Last days of. Death and burial of. Portrait of ,.. Anecdotes of " Barking squirrels" Adventure of, related by him- self , Boone, Rebecca, and how Daniel won her Boys of the Border, their pluck and spirit , Boy kills an Indian How easily became Indianized, Two remain in the woods all Winter Brady, Captain Sam'l, Sketch of.. Brady's Bend Kills two savages at a shot Attacks an Indian camp Tracked by a dog His famous "Leap" His trial, marriage and death... Bozarth, Geo., his ruse and escape, Bouquet, Colonel Henry His battle of Bushv Run 709 225 168 47 277 550 152 161 143 374 649 680 677 143 277 653 253 257 258 261 263 278 280 286 288 1 289 290 512 708 719 722 722 746 426 429 433 435 437 439 441 745 150 152 Forces a peace and recovers hun- dreds of captives...... 156 Brickell's captivity 736 Bryant's and Hogan's party at- tacked 381 Brothers, Two little, captured 731 Butler, General Richard, hero of North Bend council 502 Death of, at St. Clair's defeat... 539 Cacasotte, throws fourteen robbers overboard 681 Canadian, French 13 Captivities — Col. James Smith 75 McCullough 304 Bard Family 225 John Brickell 736 Jonathan Alder 725 Mrs. Clendenin 713 Colonel Crawford 456 Massy Harbison 685 Casey, Wm., a lad, saves his sister, 744 Catawbas, Cherokees and Chicka- saws 6 Clark, George Rogers, Sketch of... 477 Marches on Kaskaskia 481 Treatment of Indians 485 His strange march 490 Takes Vincennes 495 His disappointment and death.. 498 At North Bend council 500 Clendenin. Mrs., Capture of 713 Colter's famous race for life 644 Conestoga Indians, Massacre of... 177 Cook, The widows, their heroic de- fence 715 Cornstalk, Chief 166 Murder of, and son 166 Coureurs des Bois 15 Crawford, Colonel William 449 Who he was 451 Expedition against Sandusky. . 454 His defeat and capture 456-45^ Interview with Girty 460 Awful tortures and death of..... 462 Crepps and Crist, their desperate boat fight 610 Crow, the Misses, Murder of. 702 Cunningham, Mrs. , Capture of, and saved by Girty 705 Cunningham, Mrs. Edward, her valor 714 Dalzell, Captain 142 Death of. 14a XIV Index. Page, Darke, Lt. Col., his daring and es- cape 546 Daviess, Mrs. Samuel, Courage of, 699 Davis, Caffree and McClure, their fierce combat with Indians — 615 Deer drives and ring hunts 101 Delaware Indians 6 Dennis, Hannah, Escape of 712 Detroit, Siegeof 127 Downing, Francis, saved by a bear, 734 Dunbar, the Tardy 45-60 Dunmore's War 161 Duquesne, Fort 22 Braddock's expedition against.. 40 Capture of 64 Elliott,Capt., deserts to the British 392 Emigration, Western — odd scenes, 650 English traders 13 Eries, Destruction of 7 Erlewyne, Ered., a lad, captured.. 723 Estill, Captain, his well-fought ac- tion and death 269 Fink, Mike, last of the keelboat- men 655 His feats and death.... 666-669 Fleming, The Misses, adventures, 569 Sad plight of, and rescue 594 Flinn, the hunter, Sad fate of 589 Forts, Presq' Isle 125 Detroit 127 Duquesne 22 Henry 515 Sieges of 523 Necessity 23 Machillimackinac 117 Franklin as a commander 23G French Canadian 13 Game and deer drives of olden time 659 Girty, James 618 Girty, Simon, before Brvant's sta- tion \ 274 Saves Kenton 309 At Crawford's torture 461 Not at h'rst siege of Wheeling... 517 But at second 523 Repentant 618 Saves Mrs. Cunningham 705 Deserts from Fort Pitt 392 Sketch of 418 His attack on Bryant's station.. 271 Marries Kate Miilott 418 Death of 424 Halket, Sir Peter 44 His death 55 Singular discovery of his re- mains by his sun 66 Pag* Hammond and the Bennetts, Es- cape of 62S Harmar, Gen., his campaign and defeat 530 Harris, John, of Harrisburg 234 Harbison, Massy, Touching narra- tive of 685 Harrod, James, Life and adven- tures of 605 Nurses a wounded Indian........ 508 Mysterious death of. 509 Hart, Silas, his son avenges him. ... 745 Henry, Alexander, the trader 118 His adventures.. 121 Higgins, the Ranger, Obstinate combat of , t 641 Holland, Luke, his sagacity at trailing 647 Hubbell, Captain, Desperate at- tack on boat of. 604 Obstinate defence 606 Hughes, Jesse, mountain hunter.., 569 Hurons, The 6 Indians, Anecdotes of. 748 Introduction 1 Iroquois or Six Nations 7 Jack, Captain, the wild hunter of the Juniata 56-109 Jesuit Pioneers 14 Johonnet, Jackson, Singular ad- ventures of 632 Johnson Boys, Remarkable ex- ploits of 721 Johnson, Sir William, Baronet... 243 Peculiar education of his daughters 245 Author's late visit to Johnson Hall and Castle 248 Kennan, the Ranger, his race for life 542 Gallantry 545 Kennedy, Peter, Combat and es- cape of.. 510 Kenton, Simon 293 Remarkable adventures of 301 Saved by Girty 309 Meets Logan 312 His last years 315 Appearance of ' 318 Adventure with Wetzel 325 Adventures with Ward and Calvin 598 Kentucky in the olden time 254 Kentucky, Women of 273 Sports of 290 Kentucky, Adventures of five boys of. 721 Index. xv Page, Kirk, a lad, made to slay six In- dians 747 Kirkwood, Captain Kobert 546-675 Knights of Golden Horseshoe 2 Knight, Dr. John, his wonderful escape 468 Lewis, General Andrew 164 Little Turtle, a chief 546 Logan, Benjamin 352 After battle of Blue Licks 284 Logan, the famous Mingo Chief... 170 Death of 175 Logan, Captain, a Shawnee chief, 360 His romantic death 363 Logston, "Big Joe" 369 Machillimackinac, Fort, captured, 117 Marshall, Thos.,and Jas. Girty... 618 Mason, Mrs. George, kills one and frightens a score 711 Massawomee Indians 6 May, John, Johnston, Flinn and Skyles, Adventures of 571 Merrill, Mrs. John, the " Long- Knife Squaw" 698 Messhawa, a noble chief. 577-585 Fights with Tecumseh 597 Miller, The Brothers, and their adventures 555-558 Minter, Captain John, his famous bear fight 662 McAfee Brothers, Adventure of... 379 McClellan, Eobert, the Banger.... 554 His life and extraordinary feats, 562 His later exploits 566-571 McCullough, John, Captivity of... 204 McColloch, Major Samuel, at siege of For' Henry 520 McGary, Hugh, at Blue Licks 277 His defence.., 283 Kills Moluntha 360 McKee, Captain, deserts to the British 392 McManimy, Torture of 227 McConnel's capture and revenge.. 377 Mills, Thos., riddled with bullets, 679 Moluntha, Murder of , 358 Montour, Catharine, alias Queen Esther 628 Moravian mission 397 Towns destroyed 400 Massacre of 403 Moredock, Colonel John, his terri- ble revenge .., 633 Alorgan, David, his desperate con- flict 385 Morgan, Levi, his stratagem for his life 678 Pag* Muldrow, how he found his neigh- bor 664 Northwestern campaign 529 Ogilvie, Pleasant adventure of. ... 639 One hundred years ago 1-8 Pack-horseing o52 Perry, Levi and Reuben, two lit- tle boys, in woods all Winter, 746 Pioneers, Life and customs of 183 Hardships of 187 Woodcraft and hunting 191 "Weddings, frolics and amuse- ments of 193 Pioneer women 4-5 Of Kentucky 273 Their trials and heroism 685 Pipe, Captain 389 Pitt, Fort, Guyasutha's siege of... 148 Poe, Aiiui'ew and Adam, their fa- mous light with Bigiuot 445 Andrew's tussle with a bull 447 His narrow escape 448 Pontiac, Conspiracy of. 112 Character of 114 Anecdotes of 134 Death of 147 Point Pleasant, Battle of 161 Purdy Family, Massacre of. 672 Ray, James, Adventures of 740 Reynolds, Lieut., chaffing Girty.. 276 Gallantry of 281 Rice's Fort, Attack on 528 Rose, Major John, at Crawford's expedition 455 Schoolmaster attacked by wild cat, 383 Scarrooyaddy, Chief. 18 Scott, Frances, Wanderings of..... 706 Scraggs, Widow, fierce attack on her cabin 695 Sevier, Ruth, marries a Shawnee Chief 717 Shawnees 6 Six Nations 7 Slocum, Frances, the lost sister... 630 Slover, John, the guide, Capture and adventures of 468 His escape and mad ride 471 Smith, Col. James, his captivity.. 75 His marriage 105 Takes a British fort 107 Smith, Major, how he recovered his sweetheart 667 St. Clair, Sir John 46 St. Clair, General ArJiur, his campaign and defeat 537 Index. Page. ^iair, Louisa, the dashing and beautiful 710 Stobo, Major Kobert 26 Kemarkable adventures of 29 His escape from Quebec 31 Captures two ships 35 Thomas, Captain John, massacre of family 674 Tush Family, Massacre of 673 Van Buskirk, Sad death of 671 Van Campen, Major, his wonder- ful combat 621 Vincennes, Capture of 495 Ward, Captain James, and the fat Dutchman 619 Ward, Calvin and Kenton's adven- tures 598 War Belt, legend of North Bend.. 500 Washington, George, his first visit to the West 17 To Venango 19 Hurled into the Allegheny and shot at 20 His first campaign 23 Surrenders Fort Necessity 25 Sick on the march 46-49 itesaduei t/A Braddocks Fields... §Q Page. Wayne, "Mad Anthony," Cam- paign of 54" Weiser, Conrade 231 Wells, Capt. William, the Eanger, and daring exploits 554-559 Wells, Jack, and his dream 372 Wild white man and his story 665 Wetzel family 319 Martin captured 320 John's adventures 321 As a boy 723 Jacob and Kenton 325 Lewis the most daring and fa- mous 327 Captured when a boy..... 328 Kills three savages in a running fight 329 Adventures of 330 Doath of 342 Widow won at last 716 Williams, The Isaac and Kebecca of West Virginia 718 Williamson, David... 403-7-1 6— 450-8 White Eyes, a noble Delaware Chief 389 Will Case on the border..... 241 Zane, Betty, her famous gun- powder exploit ..~..*m..—.. £34 OUR WESTERN BORDER, - ' ♦ Chapter I INTRODUCTION. Where are the sturdy yeomea Who battled for this land, And trod these hoar old forests, A brave and gallant band ? They knew no dread of danger When rose the Indian's yell; Right gallantly they struggled Right gallantly they fell. From Allegheny's summit To the farthest western shore, These brave men's bones are lying Where they perished in their gore. Their bones were left to whiten The spot where they were slain, And were ye now to seek them They would be sought in vain. — The Pioneer. One Hundred Years Ago ! That is a large measure of time In America ! Compared with Egypt or Greece or Rome, our Republic is yet in its veriest infancy. The ivy-mantled abbeys and rook-haunted castles of England date from William the Conqueror, over eight hun- dred years ago. One century here suffice th to give the stamp of hoary antiquity, and our nation is even now celebrating its first Centennial with as much swelling "pride, pomp and circumstance" as if it were its fiftieth. Time, however, is not tested by periods, but by events. " Better," writes Tennyson, "fifty years of Europe than a cycle of Cathay." Of how much value, then, is one year in America, where life is so intensi- fied ; where quick-thronging events so crowd and jostle each other, and where rapid development is such a very marvel that the wild dream of yesterday becomes the sober reality of to-day; where entire com- munities rise, as it were, like exhalations from the earth, and where the magic growth of Chicago and St. Louis may soon find parallel in some far city of the Plains or of the Pacific Slope. 2 Our Western Border. One Hundred Years Ago, almost the entire vast and magnificent domain beyond the Alleghenies was an unbroken wilderness — an illimit- able ocean of verdure, sweeping over hill and dale in billowy undula- tions ; seamed here and there by dividing ridges, or cut into leafy rifts by abounding streams : intersected only by devious Indian trails or buffalo paths ; inhabited by swarthy and subtle savages, or infested by noxious serpents and prowling beasts of prey. Green intervals, dotted with browsing deer ; expansive savannas, cumbered with clumsy bison ; savage gorges ; wild, sunless glens, or matted, luxuriant thickets, here and there broke the monotony of all this sylvan scenery. What is now the Great West, was then the Unknown West — as mys- terious a region and as provocative of daring adventure as are to-day the unexplored wilds of Central Africa. If the hardy hunters who ventured into those vast solitudes brought not back with them stories of "Cannibals that each other eat; Of Anthropophagi and men whose heads Do grow beneath their shoulders," they did circulate many won- drous stories of the marvelous fatness and beauty of those vast wastes ; of the variety and prodigality of the vegetation — vines, grasses, woods, flowers and exuberant undergrowth ; of the plenteous supply of every variety of noble game, and, especially, of the fierce and untamed sava- ges, who threaded the virgin forests ; who paddled their birchen barks on the full-banked streams, or who, hideous in paints, encountered them amid woodland glooms with horrid whoop and fierce assault. Little more than a half century before, Spottswood, the spirited Gov- ernor of the Colony of Virginia, had endeavored to stimulate the slum- nering Livingstones of his day and district, by establishing what was called the Transmontane Order of the Knights of the Golden Horse- shoe, investing each of those who ventured beyond the mountains, with a miniature golden horseshoe bearing the legend, " Sic jurat tran- scendere montes," or " Thus (or by this) he swears to cross the mount- ains." Equipping a company of horsemen, the adventurous Governor commenced his march in great pomp from Williamsburg, the then capi- tal of the colony. Pursuing their slow and devious way amid forests of majestic growth ; crossing bright streams of sparkling freshness ; passing by constant displays of leafy or floral exuberance, they finally climbed to the summit of the Allegheny mountains. But, that was the ultima thule of their explorations. They were, it is true, enchanted with the mag- nificent prospect which, from their rocky perch, burst upon their en- raptured vision, but they never reached the thither or sunset slopes of those mountains, but contented themselves with gazing, as did Moses from Mount Pisgah, at the affluent Canaan beyond. Even thirty years later there were but few, and those belonging to the " wild turkey Introduction. 3 breed " of whom Boone and Kenton were such conspicuous members, who had advanced as far west as the Shenandoah Valley ; but it was not really until about 1760 that the prophetic line of Bishop Berkeley began to re realized : — " Westward the star of empire takes its way." It is quite foreign from our purpose to present a formal and precise chronicle of the gradual penetration of the pioneers into the western wilderness ; nor do we design to cumber and overload our work with details of Indian nations, customs and habits. All this would require whole volumes, and has been done fully and acceptably by others. What may be called the Heroic Age of Western Bcrder Life and Strug- gle, is embraced in the last half of the 18th century, or to speak more definitely, from about the year 1760, after the capture of Forts Du- quesne and Niagara, down to the year 1794, when "Mad Anthony Wayne " forever broke the spirit and crushed the power of the Confed- erate Western Tribes at the battle of the "Fallen Timbers." Within the period thus limited, we may safely challenge all history, ancient or modern, to exhibit such a constant series of stubborn and desperate struggles. The turbulent times of the Robber Barons of Germany, o r the bitter and violent feuds of the Scottish Border, furnish no parallels to the frequent forays and marauds ; to the innumerable acts of daring ; of cool, reckless courage and adventure ; of persistent tenacity of pur- pose, as are embraced in the chronicles and the unwritten traditions of the Pennsylvania, Virginia, Kentucky and Tennessee frontiers. It was a fierce, dogged, savage and desperate struggle between two brave and jealous races ; the whites fighting for room and opportunity to live and thrive, and the reds for what they deemed their own soil and hunting grounds. "When Greek meets Greek, then comes the tug o'war," and every man who went out upon those borders carried his life in his hands ; liable, at any time, to be shot or tomahawked from every tree that could cover a lurking foe ; his home and family constantly exposed to the merciless attacks of a savage, wily and implacable enemy. Each knew well that it was " war to the knife, and the knife to the hilt," and worked, idled or slept with his trusty blade or rifle within easy grasp. It was generally the young, ardent and the adventurous, who thus boldly made haste to bid grim defiance to perils and to offer a standing chal- lenge to fierce and revengeful foes. From this incessant exposure to imminent peril, there naturally grew up on the border a race of sturdy, reckless, rough-and-ready frontier- men to whom fear was absolutely unknown, and to many of whom the most thrilling passion of their lives was long, solitary hunts after In- dians whom they would track with the unswerving tenacity of the blood- hound and, when found, grapple with a most marvelous audacity and 4 Our Western Border. doggedness. All their senses were on the alert ; trained to a wondrous skill and quickness with the keen tomahawk or the unerring rifle ; prac- ticed in every variety of wood-craft; they had an eye equal to the sava- ges themselves for detecting the minutest signs of an enemy, and for trailing him through the most bewildering woods and undergrowth to his very lair. We often shudder when, sitting by our quiet firesides, we read of the desperate combats between such mighty hunters as Ger- ard and Cummings and the ferocious lions, tigers, and other wild beasts, whose jungles they have gone long distances to penetrate ; but what are the fiercest and most infuriate of all animals that ever crouched to a leap, compared with the subtle and desperate American savage, perfectly at home in his native wilds ; with all his destructive wits, sharp- ened to an extraordinary acuteness ; taught from childhood to find life's highest honors in killing and scalping, and trained in every possible wile to lure or ensnare a foe. How truly the famous Poe, with his quaint and homely hunter's jargon, confessed to a common passion of the Border, when he said, with deepest feeling, " I've fout cats and bar and painter, and every other wild varmint of the woods, but Injuns beats them all ! Yes, Injuns beats them all ! " And think, too, of the heroic women ! — the wives and mothers of .he pioneers. As one of their own number has said, " A good Provi- dence sent such men and women into the world together. They were made to match." It is said that war, if it lead to havoc, mourning and desolation, has also a tendency to excite the nobler and more heroic pas- sions of the soul. It is, in a measure, true, and the women of the scourged and harassed Border were — under their constant familiarity with danger in its most horrid and appalling forms — perfect paragons of nerve and fortitude. The annals of the West are absolutely brilliant with the most marvelous exhibitions of female heroism. They had not, like the men % the passions and excitements of the chase, but were left in exposed, isolated cabins, with all the cares and anxieties of the family upon them, and when these homes were suddenly invaded by the pitiless savages and themselves carried off into a hopeless captivity, were iiable to see the brains of their young babes dashed out against the nearest tree, and their older children either killed or scalped before their eyes or scattered among various captors. How crowded are all our Border chronicles with the sickening horrors of settlers' cabins at- tacked and the women and children shamefully maltreated I The Mothers of our Forest Land, Such were their daring deeds. Their monument ! where does it stand? Their epitaph, who reads ? No Draver dames had Sparta, No nobler matrons Rome, Vet who or lauds or honors them E'en in their own green home? Introduction. g They had no respite from a wearing, consuming anxiety, except in the dead of winter, when the Indians generally lay quiet in their forest towns ; as soon, however, as the wild geese were seen steering their way to the north, or the frogs were heard piping in the ponds and marshes, then a great dread came over them. The poet has sung of Autumn, that the " melancholy days have come, the saddest of the year," but with women of the border, it was the Spring whose breezes came freighted with sadness. The customary harbingers of Spring to them were the appalling, blood-curdling yell of the stealthy savage, or the gleam of his thirsting and unsparing tomahawk. They regarded the budding of trees and the opening bloom of flowers with the most gloomy forebod- ings, and listened to the songs of the woodland birds as but the prelude to the shriek of assault. Then was the bark of the watch-dog at night, especially if their male protectors were absent, far more dismal than the cry of either wolf or panther, since it suggested the probability of lurk- ing redmen, and the fond, anxious mother would start from her troubled slumber, and, with ear attent and head uplifted, would listen, listen, listen for the sound of the distant war-whoop or the rude assault upon her barred, oaken door. Then, perchance, she would fall again into fitful, uneasy slumber, to dream of some murderous deed or horrid scalping. Oh, " we, in these piping times o' peace," may never know — most certainly can never realize, a tithe of the dreads, the privations, the sufferings and the untold and untellable horrors which the noble and heroic women of the West endured for many and many years of their lives. Surely, had not a constant familiarity with danger bred indiffer- ence to it, their lives would have been inexpressibly hard and intolerable. It would be clearly impossible, as indeed it would be undesirable, to publish a full and detailed chronicle of all that was done or suffered by the pioneers and their families. We can only hope to give readers a true and impressive idea of border life and struggle, by carefully selecting salient events and personal adventures, each differing from the other in character and incident, but all, together, furnishing, as it were, a historical panorama of a half century of forays, marauds, mas- sacres and adventures, and narrated, so far as may be, in the chrono- logic order of occurrence, and connected together by a running com- mentary of explanation. By thus retaining only the cream of the various border books — most of which have long been out of print, and are exceedingly rare and costly; by adding many new sketches and adventures, known to a comparative few ; by correcting the errors of the old, staple histories, and furnishing much new and original matter, we hope, within the compass of a portable book, to give a faithful idea of our western border as it was one hundred years ago. 6 Our Western Border. And, first, it is a great but common error to suppose that the vast domain stretching west of the Alleghenies was thickly settled and occu* pied with Indians. The whole of Kentucky had not a single tribe resi- dent within its ample borders, but was used by the Catawbas, Chero- kees and Chickasaws to the south, and by the Delawares, Shawnees and Hurons to the north, as one common hunting and skirmishing ground. It was about the same with the western half of Virginia and eastern half of Ohio. Immense tracks of woodland — a very paradise for hunters — were left an utter solitude. Large parts of Michigan, Illinois and Tennessee were tenanted by wild beasts alone. In the whole vast region lying between the Atlantic and Mississippi, the Cumberland and Lake Superior, the entire Indian population, at the opening of the Revolution, scarce exceeded ten thousand warriors, of which the Six Nations of New York numbered about two thousand, the Delawares six hundred, the Shawnees five hundred, the Hurons or Wyandots about the same, the Miami tribes eight hundred, &c. Most of the Ohio In- dians, too, were but late comers, the Delawares and Shawnees having emigrated from Pennsylvania from 1730 to 1750, and the Hurons having moved down from the neighborhood of Detroit and the upper lakes. The Shawnee villages which Christian Post found in the upper Ohio valley were soon after abandoned, and the majestic Ohio, "strong without rage; without o'erflowing, full," swept onward from its head to its mouth, with scarce a hamlet along its woody margins to denote the abodes of human beings. On interior streams, however, as the Sciota, Muskingum, Wabash, Miami, &c, the villages of the redmen were more numerous. A significant reason is given for this. It is said that the same beautiful and abounding stream which the French so appro- priately called La Belle Riviere, was long previously known to some of the tribes which lived along its borders under the dread name of the River of Blood. It was no idle title. Tradition tells of many a. san- guinary battle along the picturesque shores of this grand old river, over whose sylvan banks has so often trickled the crimson stream of Indian massacre. When Virginia was first known to the whiter the Massawomees — so called by the Indians of East Virginia, to whom ihey were a constant source of alarm — were the most powerful confederacy of western tribes, and many a fierce and bloody fight are they reported to have had with the then Five Nations of New York, the most powerful combination of eastern tribes. It had, in the early times, been the fashion of these Iroquois, settled about the York lakes, to come down the Allegheny and Ohio in flotillas of canoes, and, moving thus swiftly and secretly, Desi ruction of the Erie Tribe. 7 having few impedimenta and little or no trouble about provisions, and leaving no trail either to betray their presence or indicate their line of retreat, they could thus swoop down like a tempest upon towns and villages within striking distances of -the Ohio. For this reason the regions on both margins of that stream had long been unoccupied, and were only roamed over by hunting parties of various nations, the tribal villages generally lying from fifty to a hundred miles back, and being located at the forks of some tributary stream allowing easy can 03 navigation in all directions. These Six Nations, called Iroquois by the French and Mingoes or Mengwe by the Dutch, merit a somewhat more extended notice at our hands, since of all the savage tribes in America they stood foremost in war, in eloquence, in primitive virtues, and in all the arts of policy. They were the Romans of America, and were the proud conquerors of an immense extent of country, including even Canada itself, and it was through actual or alleged purchase from them that the English asserted title to all the land west of the Allegheny Mountains, the French claim- ing the same magnificent domain by right of discovery and prior possession. They consisted originally of five nations : the Mohawks, the Oneidas, the Onondagos, the Cayugas, and the Senecas, to whom a sixth, the Tuscaroras, from the south, were admitted in. The con- federacy thus formed was strong, close and harmonious, their am- bition and ferocious valor adding one domain after another, and sub- jecting to their dominion every tribe in the whole country worth con- tending with. As De Witt Clinton truly remarked: "They are the Romans of America," and through the magic potency of union and concerted ac- tion, were able to accomplish wonders. It was among them, and at the time when they had arrived at the height of their power, that we must look for the highest type of the American Indian, such as he was before debauched and degraded by the contaminating influences of the debased trader and rum-seller. To give only one instance of the success of the Iroquois in the subjugation of other nations, we subjoin their traditional account of the total DESTRUCTION OF THE ERIE TRIBE OF INDIANS. The Eries were famed as the most powerful and warlike of all the Indian tribes. They resided at the foot of the great lake of the same name, at a place called Tu-shu-way, now the opulent city of Buffalo. When the Eries heard of the close confederation formed between the Mohawks, Oneidas, Onondagos, Cayugas and Senecas, which went under the name of the Five Nations, they imagined it must be for 8 Our Western Border. §ome mischievous purpose. Although confident of their superiority over any one of the tribes inhabiting the countries within the bounds of their knowledge, they dreaded the power of such combined forces. In order to satisfy themselves regarding the character, disposition and power of those they considered their natural enemies, the Eries resorted to the following means. They sent a friendly message to the Senecas, who were their nearest western neighbors and styled the Warders of the Threshold of the Long House, inviting them to select one hundred of their most active and athletic young men to play a game of ball against the same number to be selected by the Eries, for a wager which should be considered worthy of the occasion and the character of the great nation in whose behalf the offer was made. The message was received and entertained in the most respectful man- ner. A council of the Five Nations was called, and the proposition fully discussed, and a messenger in due time dispatched with the deci- sion of the council, respectfully declining the challenge. This embold- ened the proud and warlike Eries, and the next year the offer was re- newed, and, after being again considered, was again formally declined. This was far from satisfying the proud Lords of the Lake, and the chal- lenge was renewed a third time. The young " braves " of the Iroquois now became greatly excited. They clamored for the acceptance of the audacious defi, and, finally, the wise councils which had hitherto prevailed at last gave way and the challenge was accepted. Nothing could exceed the enthusiasm with which each tribe sent forth its chosen champions for the contest. The only difficulty seemed to be to make a selection where all were so worthy. After much delay, one hundred of the flower of all the tribes were finally designated, and the day for their departure was fixed. An experienced chief was chosen as the leader of the party, whose orders the young men were strictly en- joined to obey. A grand council was called, and in the presence of the assembled multitude the party was charged in the most solemn manner to observe a pacific course of conduct towards their competitors and the nation whose guests they were about to become and to allow no provo- cation, however great, to be resented by an act of aggression on their part, but in all respects to acquit themselves worthy the representatives of a great and powerful people, anxious to cultivate peace and friend- ship with their neighbors. Under these solemn injunctions, the party took up its long wilderness march for Tu-shu-way. When the chosen band had arrived near their their destination, a messenger was sent forward to notify the Eries of their arrival and the next day was set apart for their entree. Destruction of the Erie Tribe. 9 The graceful and athletic forms, the tasteful yet not cumbrous dress, the noble, dignified bearing of their chief, and, more than all, the mo- dest demeanor of the young warriors of the Iroquois party won the ad- miration of all beholders. They brought no arms. Each one bore a bat, used to throw or strike a ball, tastefully ornamented, being a hick- ory stick about five feet long, bent round at one end and a deer-thong netting woven across the bow. After a day of repose and refreshment all things were arranged for the contest. The Chief of the Iroquois brought forward and deposited upon the ground, a large pile of elegantly-wrought belts of wampum, costly robes, silver and copper bands, beautifully ornamented mocca- sins and other articles of great value in the eyes of the swarthy sons of the forest, as the stake and wager on the part of his people. They were abundantly matched by the Eries with stakes of equal value — article by article, tied together and again deposited on the pile. The game began and although contested with desperation and mar- velous skill by the Eries, was finally won by the Iroquois, who bore off the prizes in triumph. Thus ended the first day. The Iroquois having now accomplished the object of their visit, pre- pared to take their leave, but the Chief of the Eries, addressing him- self to their leader, said their young men, though fairly beaten in the game of ball, would not be satisfied unless they could have, also, a foot race, and proposed to match ten of their number against ten of the Iro- quois party, which was finally assented to by the Iroquois, who were again victorious. The Kauk-waus, who resided on the Eighteen Mile Creek, being pres- ent as the friends and allies of the Eries, now invited the Iroquois to visit them before their return home and thither the whole party repaired. The Chief of the Eries, as a last trial of the courage and prowess of his guests, proposed to select ten men, to be matched with a like number from the Iroquois, to wrestle, and that each victor should dispatch his adversary on the spot by braining him with a tomahawk and bearing off the scalp as a trophy. This savage proposition was not pleasing to the Iroquois ; they, how- ever, concluded to accept the challenge with a determination, should they be victorious, not to execute the bloody part of the proposition. The champions were accordingly chosen. A Seneca was the first to step into the ring, who threw his adversary amid the shouts of the ex- cited multitude. The victor, however, stepped back and declined to slay the victim lying passive at his feet. As quick as thought, however, the Chief of the Eries cast his tomahawk and at a single blow scattered Cat brains of the vanquished warrior over the sod. His body was dragged 10 Our Western Border. out of the way and another champion of the Eries presented himself, who was as quickly thrown by his adversary and as quickly dispatched by the infuriated Chief of the Eries. A third met the same fate. The Chief of the Iroquois seeing now the terrible excitement that agitated the swaying assemblage, quietly gave the signal for retiring. Every man obeyed the signal, and in an instant the whole body had vanished beneath the sombre shades of the forest, and in two hours arrived again at Tu-shu-way, where, gathering up their various trophies, they departed for their distant homes. This visit and astounding victory of the Iroquois only served to in- crease the alarm and jealousy of the Eries and to profoundly convince them that they had most powerful and formidable rivals to contend with. It was no part of their policy to cultivate friendship with tribes growing daily stronger by union. They knew of no better mode of securing peace for themselves but by exterminating all who might oppose them, and concluded that their only chance of success against this growing confederation would be to attack each tribe singly. They were far more than a match with any one of the confederate tribes. Should they wait to be invaded and cope with the whole united force of their adversaries, or should they make a sudden and secret move- ment and destroy them in detail ? The question was urgent and the decision was prompt, and a powerful war party was organized to attack first the Senecas, residing at the foot of the lake of the same name and along the banks of the Seneca river. It happened that at this time there resided among the Eries a Seneca woman, who in early life had been taken prisoner and had married an Erie " brave." He had died and left her a widow without children, a stranger in a strange land. Seeing the terrible preparation for a bloody onslaught upon her kindred and friends, she formed the resolution of at once apprising them of their danger. At the first nightfall, there- fore, taking the course of the Niagara river, she traveled all night, and early next morning reached the shores of Ontario. Jumping into a canoe which she found fastened to a tree, she boldly pushed out into the open lake and coasted along to the mouth of the Oswego, where was located a village of her nation. She directed her steps to the lodge of the third chief and disclosed her fateful news. She was secreted by this chief, and fleet runners were at once dispatched to all the tribes, summoning them to meet in grand council at Onondago. When all were assembled the chief arose and in the most solemn man ner rehearsed a vision, in which he said a beautiful bird had appeared to him and asserted that a great war party of the Eries was preparing to make a secret and sudden descent upon them, and that nothing couid Destruction of the Erie Tribe. 11 save them but an immediate rally of all their warriors to meet the foe before he could be able to strike. This solemn announcement was heard in breathless silence. When the chief had sat down there arose one fierce yell of rage and madness, and the earth fairly trembled as the mighty mass stamped upon the ground with fury, brandishing on high their Avar clubs and tomahawks. No time was to be lost. A body of five thousand warriors was speedily organized and, also, a corps of reserve, consisting of one thou- sand young men who had never yet been in battle. The bravest and most experienced chiefs from all the tribes were placed in command ; the spies immediately set out in search of the hated foe, and the whole body stealthily took up its line of march in the direction of the expected attack. For several days they continued to advance. They had scarcely, however, passed the foot of the Can-an-da-gua Lake, when their scouts brought back news of the advance of the Eries, who had already crossed the Ce-nis-se-u (Genesee) river in great force. The Eries had not the slightest intimation of the approach of their foes. They relied upon the secrecy and celerity of their movements to surprise and subdue the Senecas almost without resistance. The two parties met at a point about half way from Canandagua Lake and the Genesee river, and it was just at the outlet of the little lake Honeoye that the struggle took place. This small stream alone divided the two hostile arrays. The entire strength of the Confeder- ates was not in view of the Eries. The reserve force of young men did not appear at all, being carefully kept concealed. Nothing could resist the fierceness and impetuosity of the Eries at the first view of their hated foes. They rushed through the intervening stream and fell upon them with shrill yells and incredible fury. The undaunted courage and desperate valor of the Iroquois could not avail against such a terrible and irresistible onslaught and the first ranks were compelled to yield ground. The entire force, the Iroquois reserve only excepted, now became engaged. The shock of battle was terrible ! Hand to hand, foot to foot, they struggled long and desperately. No quarter was asked or given on either side. As the fight thickened and became more obstinate and destructive, the Eries, for the first time, appeared sensible of their true situation. What they had long feared had now become a terrible reality. Their enemies had combined for their destruction and they now found themselves en- gaged in a desperate struggle, not only for the glory, but for the very existence of their nation. Too late to falter now ! They were proud and valorous and knew 12 Our Western Border. how to conquer, but not to yield. The combat grew from that instant more bloody and obstinate. The Iroquois feeling strong in numbers : fired with zeal and ambition ; acting for the first time in concert and led on. by their bravest and mightiest chiefs, felt themselves to be invinci- ble. Though staggered at first by the fierce and repeated rushes of their opponents, they manfully rallied and returned yell for yell and blow for blow. And now the awful din of battle rises higher and higher. The war club, the tomahawk, the scalping knife do terrible deeds of death and havoc. During the very hottest of this savage and bloody battle, the corps of reserve of one thousand eager and wrathful young Iroquois were secretly led across the stream and placed in ambush in the rear o/ the Eries. Seven times had the brave and heroic Eries been driven across the crimson stream, and as often regained their ground and now when ex- hausted and hardest pressed by this appalling and unequal contest, the shrill, blood-curdling yells of the Iroquois' reserve are heard in their startled ears. Unblenched ; disdaining to yield but ready to die, they turn to confront this fresh and formidable foe. In vain ! In vain ! What could valor, however heroic, avail against this fresh swarm whose onset was so terrible and irresistible. The battle was lost and all that remained was to meet the death they courted like true warriors. Hun- dreds were cut down and trampled over. Only a comparative few of the Eries escaped to carry the sad news of their utter overthrow to their wives, old men and children. But the victors gave them no rest but pursued with the fierceness and tenacity of savage sleuth-hounds. Few- were left to tell the tale of disaster. Tradition adds that many years after a powerful war party of the de- scendants of the Eries, who had fled beyond the Mississippi, ascended the Ohio and Allegheny and made a last desperate assault upon their hereditary foes, the Senecas, at Tu-shu-way. A great battle was again fought, but with a like result. The Eries were not alone defeated, but were slain to a man. The places that once knew them, now knew them no more, and nothing at this late day but the name of Erie remains to tell that such a nation ever existed. We find among the records of the Jesuit Missions another episode of this international contest which, although known but to few, is yet full of romantic interest. Twelve years before the date of the great battle at the foot of Honeoye, the Jesuit missionaries were at work among the Iroquois, but with scarcely any appreciable results. When the news of the advance of the Eries was blazoned abroad among the tribes, Father Le Moyne was zealously serving at Onondago, where was stationed the The French Canadian and the English Trader. 13 Long House of the Five Nations. Of those who gathered at the call of the council to meet the invasion, was an influential chief, Achiongeras by name. On the eve of his departure he called on the faithful priest- pictured to him the perils he was about to encounter, wished to put himself under the protection of the Great Spirit and was finally bap- tized. The converted chief, with the dews of baptism yet damp upon his brow, then started, at the head of his savage legion, on the war path. The opposing forces came together, as we have related, with a dread- ful shock. When the lines of the Iroquois were slowly retreating before the victorious Eries, Achiongeras, whose intrepid bearing had made him conspicuous in the fight, suddenly paused amid the deadly conflict and beckoned to the braves who supported him. They gathered about him at the signal. Dropping upon his knee, the Christian convert lifted his crimsoned hands towards heaven, the group of encircling savages imitating the action, when with a solemn vow they unitedly plighted their faith in the God of prayer if He would only give them aid in this crisis of their peril. The vow was honored from above. Animated afresh, the wavering band regained its footing, won back its lost ground and paused not until the field was won. Achiongeras and his followers were true to their pledge. After the return of the victors a general council was called, when, by solemn de- cree, Christianity was proclaimed in the capital of the confederacy. The French were invited over from Canada to plant a Mission. Fathers Menard, Dablon, Broar and Boursier, attended by a numerous escort of savages, launched their fleet of canoes at Quebec, ascended the St. Law- rence, the banner of the Cross waving its silken folds at the head, and amid the roar of cannon and the ringing cheers of waiting multitudes, landed, after a tedious but prosperous voyage, on the shores of Onon- dago, and soon after erected a house of worship ; and so was founded the great central Mission of St. Marys, which, for a long time, grew and prospered, having its branch missions among the other four nations of the confederacy. THE FRENCH CANADIAN AND THE ENGLISH TRADER. We have already stated that the French claimed all the country wa- tered by the Mississippi and its tributaries by right of discovery and prior occupation. This last fact was owing to a most marked and nota- ble difference of character between the French and the English colonists. The latter were not at first fond of roaming, but confined themselves to the narrow belt of settlements along the eastern sea-coast. They were toilers and moilers ; slow, patient, contented and industrious as com- 14 Our Western Border. pared with their French neighbors ; less ambitious to make explorations than to wrest from the soil a comfortable living. The French Canadian, however, was his very antithesis ; gay, buoyant, restless and roaming, he had an invincible longing for vagabondizing and a marvelous faculty of adaptation to any and all circumstances. As Parkman has so truth- fully remarked, he was a rightful heir to French bravery and restlessness. He had an eager love for wandering and adventure, and this propensity found ample scope in the service of the fur-trade. When the priest had shrived him of his sins ; when, after the parting carousal, he embarked with his gun and merry compagnons du voyage in the deep-laden canoe ; when their oars kept time to the measured ca- dence of their song, and the blue, sunny bosom of the Ottowa opened before them; when their frail bark quivered among the milky foam and black rocks of the rapids, and when, around their camp-fire, they lightly wasted half the night with jests and laughter — then the Canadian was in his element. His footsteps explored the farthest hiding-places of the wilderness. In the evening dance, his red cap mingled with the scalp- locks and feathers of the Indian braves, or, stretched on a bear-skin by the side of his dusky mistress, he watched the gambols of his hybrid off- spring, in happy oblivion of the partner whom he left unnumbered leagues behind. This spirit for far-reaching exploration lay not alone in the peculiar genius and temperament of the people, but was greatly enhanced by a fervent religious zeal — a regular devoteeism of the intense, engrossing kind which nerved Cortez and Pizarro to perform miracles of valor and endurance that they might win whole peoples to the "true faith." Canada was a loyal child of the Catholic faith. The church, the con- vent and the shrine were seen at every turn; over every cluster of the small white houses of the Canadians glittered the sacred emblem of the cross, and in the towns and villages could everywhere be met the black robe of the Jesuit, the gray garb of the Recollect priest, and the aus- tere habit of the Ursuline nun. All France was filled with the zeal of proselytism, and the conversion of whole races of American heathen was the line in which their enthusiasm went out. The Jesuits, with their far-famed and self-sacrificing devotion, were the foremost in carrying their faith to the remotest and most inaccessi- ble regions of the West. Nothing could stay — nothing appall them. Their story is replete with romance — miracles of patient suffering, heroic self-sacrifice and daring enterprise. They were the pioneers of French America. We see them, says Parkman, among the frozen forests of Acadia, struggling in snow-shoes with some wandering Algonquin horde, or crouching in the crowded hunting-lodge, half stifled in the The French Canadian and the English Trader. 15 smoky den, and battling with troops of famished dogs for the last mor- sel of sustenance. Again, we see the black-robed priest wading among the white rapids of the Ottawa, toiling with his savage comrades to drag the canoe against the headlong water. Again, radiant in the vestments of his priestly office, he administers the sacramental bread to kneeling crowds of plumed and painted proselytes in the black forests of the Hurons, or, bearing his life in his hand, he carries his sacred mission Sato the strongholds of the Iroquois, like a man who invades, unarmed, & den of angry tigers. Jesuit explorers traced the St. Lawrence to its source and said masses among the solitudes of Lake Superior, where the boldest fur-trader scarcely dared to follow. We have already noted the wonderful success the French had for win- ning the hearts of the untutored redmen of the forest ; it was as re- markable, in its way, as the genius of the English in repelling and alien- ating them. The latter nation appeared to want land; the former to establish empire — hence these showed the savages every honor; lured them with medals and decorations; were prodigal of their gifts, and, with the well-known pliant, plastic temper of the Frenchman, even con- descended to hunt, live and marry with them, furnishing another illus- tration of the truthful border saying, that it is impossible for an Indian to turn "pale-face," but remarkably easy for a pale-face to turn Indian. In order better to show the contrast that existed between the two races in their methods of dealing with the redmen, we again quote Parkman: "The fur-trade engendered a peculiar class of men, known by the appropriate name of bush-rangers, or coureicrs des bois — half-civilized vagrants, whose chief vocation was conducting the canoes of the traders along the lakes and rivers of the interior, but many of whom, shaking loose every tie of blood and kindred, identified themselves with the In- dians and sank into utter barbarism. In many a squalid camp among the plains and forests of the West, the traveler would have encountered men owning the blood and speaking the language of France, yet in their wild, swarthy visages and barbarous costumes, seeming more akin to those with whom they had cast their lot. He loved to decorate Ills long hair with eagle feathers; to make his face hideous with soot, ochre or vermilion, and to adorn his greasy hunting frock with horse-hair fringes. His dwelling, if he had one, was a wigwam. He lounged on a bear skin while his squaw boiled his venison and lighted his pipe. In hunting, dancing, singing, lounging, or taking a scalp, he rivaled the genuine Indian. His mind was tinctured with the superstitions of the forest. He had faith in the magic drum of the conjurer; he was not sure that a thunder cloud could not be charmed away by whistling at it through the wing-bone of an eagle; he carried the tail of a rattlesnake 16 Our Western Border. in his bullet-pouch by way of amulet, and he placed implicit trust in the prophetic truth of his dreams. "The English traders and the rude men in their employ showed, it is true, a swift alacrity to throw off the restraints of civilization, but though they became barbarians they did not become Indians. With the British settlers of the frontier, it was much the same. Rude, fierce and contemptuous, they daily encroached upon the hunting grounds of the Indians, and then paid them for the injury in abuse, insult, curses and ihreats. Thus the native population shrank back from before the English as from before an advancing pestilence, while, on the other hand, in the very heart of Canada, Indian communities sprang up, cherished by the government and favored by an easy-tempered people. The scouts, hunters and traders who ranged the woods beyond the English border, were a distinct, peculiar class, many of them coarse, ferocious and unscrupulous, yet, even in the worst, one might often have found a vigorous growth of war-like virtues, an iron endurance, an undespairing courage, a wondrous sagacity and a singular fertility of resource. "As for the traders, their goods were packed at Fort Pitt on the backs of horses, and thus distributed among the various Indian villages. More commonly, however, the whole journey was performed by means of trains, or, as they were called, brigades, of pack-horses, which, leaving the frontier settlements, climbed the shadowy heights of the Alleghenies and treaded the forests of the Ohio; diving through thickets and wading over streams. The men employed in this perilous calling were a rough, bold and intractable class, often as fierce and truculent as the savages themselves. A blanket coat, a frock of smoked deer-skin, a rifle on the shoulder and a knife and tomahawk in the belt, formed their ordinary equipment. The principal trader, the owner of the merchandise, would fix his head-quarters at some large Indian town, whence he would dispatch his subordinates to the surrounding villages, with a suitable supply of blankets and red cloth, guns and hatchets, liquor, tobacco, paint, beads and hawks-bells. This wild traffic was liable to every species of disorder — and it is not to be wondered at that, in a region where law was unknown, the jealousies of rival traders should become a fruitful source of broils, robberies and murders. " It was no easy matter for a novice, embarrassed with his cumbrous gun, to urge his horse through the thick trunks and underbrush, or even to ride at speed along the narrow Indian trails where, at every yard, the impending branches scratched him across the face. At night the camp would be formed by the side of some spring or rivulet, and if the Washington's First Visit to the Great West. 17 tiaveler was skillful in the use of his rifle, a haunch of venison would often form his evening meal. If it rained, a shade of elm or bass- wood bark was the ready work of an hour, a pile of evergreen boughs formed a bed and the saddle or knapsack a pillow. A party of Indian wayfarers would often be met journeying through the forest — a chief or warrior, perhaps, with his squaws and family. The Indians would usually make their camp in the neighborhood of the white men, and at meal time the warrior would seldom fail to seat himself by the trader's fire and gaze with solemn gravity at the viands before him and receive his fragment of bread and cup of coffee with an ejaculation of grati- tude." It was just such traders as these who, from the year 1748 down to 1783, were first stopped by the French and warned off the soil, or, finding that course ineffective, were then seized and sent captives to Canada. The French were then busy erecting a continuous chain of forts from Niagara down to Louisiana, and plainly with the intent of firmly holding all the vast country which they openly claimed as theirs. Alarming reports of their violent and summary proceedings now reached the English colonies. WASHINGTON'S FIRST VISIT TO THE GREAT WEST. Gov. Dinwiddie, of Virginia, an official ot great energy and deter- mination, was not only startled but indignant at the various rumors which reached him from the Ohio region. He, therefore, appointed Major George Washington, — at that time a young surveyor of about twenty-two years of age, of excellent repute for judgment and bravery, and whom previous life had enured to hardships and instructed in woodcraft, — to proceed immediately into the distant wilds of the west; visit and deliver a letter to the French commandant; ascertain pre- cisely their strength in the Ohio country, the number and location of their forts, and what were their claims and intentions. The appointment was a good one. The zealous Major set out promptly on the very day he received his commission, and arrived at Wills Creek on Nov. 14th. Engaging horse and servants, and select- ing Jacob Van Braam as his French interpreter, and Christopher Gist, who was better acquainted with the western wilderness than any colo- nist of that day, as his guide, he turned into an old Indian trail and commenced his toilsome way, arriving at Turtle Creek, near the verj' point where scarce two years after he engaged the French- Indian army in the disastrous battle of Braddocks Fields, on the 2 2d. Washington kept a very accurate and interesting journal of his pro- ceedings, which on his return was immediately published, both in the 2 18 Our Western Border. Colonies and in Great Britain, and was the means of enlightening the English government as to the aggressive designs of the French. Some parts of his journal we will quote ; and first, the earliest mention made of the forks of the Ohio — called De-un-da-ga by the Indians, and afterwards the famous site of the French Fort Duquesne, then of the British Fort Pitt, and now of the vast and opulent city of Pittsburgh. We quote : "The waters were quite impassable without swimming our horses, which obliged us to get the loan of a canoe from Frazier," (an Indian trader who had lately been driven away from Venango by the French, and whose humble log cabin, on the banks of the Monongahela, was the ultima thine of English frontier advance) "and to send Barnaby Cur- rin and Henry Steward down the Monongahela with our baggage, to meet us at the forks of the Ohio, about ten miles below : there to cross the Allegheny. "As I got down before the canoe did, I spent some time in viewing the rivers and the land in the fork, which I think extremely well situ- ated for a fort, as it has the absolute command of both rivers. The land at the point is twenty-five feet above the common surface of the water; and a considerable ' bottom' of flat, well-timbered land all around it, very convenient for building. The rivers are each a quarter of a mile or more across and run here very nearly at right angles- Allegheny bearing north-east and Monongahela south-east. The former of these two is a very rapid and swift-running water, the other deep and still, without any perceptible fall. " About two miles from this, on the south-east side of the Ohio, at the place where the Ohio Company intended to erect a fort, lives Shin- giss, King of the Delawares. We called upon him to invite him to a council at Logstown. Shingiss attended us to Logstown " (an Indian town on the Ohio, about twenty miles below the forks,) "where we arrived between sun-setting and dark, the twenty-fifth day after I left Williamsburg. " As soon as I came to town I went to Monakatoocha " (afterwards a famous chief, generally known as Scarrooyaddy, who accompanied Braddock's Expedition as chiet guide, and who was noted for his loy- alty and repeated services to the English) "and informed him by John Davidson, my Indian interpreter, that I was sent a messenger to the French General and was ordered to call upon the sachems of the Six Nations to acquaint them with it. I gave him a string of wampum and a twist of tobacco, and desired him to send for Tannacharison, the Half King (who was absent at his hunting cabin at Little Beaver Creek) which he promised to do by a runner in the morning, as also for other sachems. Washington's First Visit to the Great West. 19 " About three o'clock this evening the Half King came to town. I went up and invited him privately to my tent, and desired him to re- late some of the particulars of his late journey to the French Com- mandant, and to give me an account of the ways and the distance. He told me that the nearest and leveiest way was now impassable by reason of many large miry savannas ; that we must be obliged to go by Venango, and should not get to the fort in less than five or six days' good traveling, &c, &c. 1 { The Half King then said that he had been received very sternly by the French commander, who abruptly asked him his business, &c. The Half King then made to him a strong protest against the French occupying their lands, building forts, &c, and warned him off the whole territory and menaced him with a rod to drive him away. The P'rench Commandant had answered very haughtily that he was not * afraid of flies or mosquitoes, and that down that river (the Allegheny) he was sure to go, and that if the river was blocked up he had abundance of force to burst it open ; that the Half King talked foolish to call the land Indian land since the French had seen it first,' &c. He also informed the Half King that the French had built two forts, one at Lake Erie (Presq' Isle, now Erie, Pa.,) and another on French Creek (where Waterford, Pa., now stands.)" All this was important news to Washington, and after a few days of ceremonious delays, he set out for the French Fort at Venango, situate on the Allegheny at the mouth of French Creek, in company with the Half King, Jeskakake, an old and prominent chief, White Thunder and the Hunter (who after became celebrated by the name of Guyasu- tha and fought the bloody battle of Bushy Run with Col. Bouquet.) After much very fatiguing travel they arrived at Venango on the 4th of December, and found the French colors hoisted on the house from which Frazier had been ejected. One of the three officers, Captain Joncaire, famed for his influence among the Indians and his skillful, pol- itic manner of first winning and then managing them, received Wash- ington very politely, but told him he would have to travel further to the fort on French Creek, where there was a superior officer. The French officers later in the day drank copiously, which unloosed their tongues so as to talk freely of French designs. They asserted boldly that it was their absolute design to take possession of the Ohio and by G — d they would do it, for although they knew that the English could raise two men for their one, yet that their motions were too slow and dilatory to prevent any French undertaking. They claimed the whole country watered by the Mississippi and its tributaries, and they were determined to occupy it all the very next Spring and thus prevent the 20 Our Western Border. English settling on the Ohio. Washington further found, by skillful "pumping," that there were then "about seven hundred French west oj Lake Ontario, scattered in a number of newly-erected forts. The French now privately coaxed the Major's redskin escort among them, and so liberally plied them with liquor that notwithstanding all his warnings they became quite drunk, but the Half King happily re- mained firm and constant, and the next day offered Joncaire a belt, (which that wily and politic officer refused to receive,) and warned the French off of the Indian soil. Every stratagem was used to prevent the chiefs from going on with Washington, but in vain, for they finally set off for the French Creek fort, which, on account of excessive rains, snows and frequent swamps, they did not reach until the nth. The commander was an elderly soldierly gentleman, a Knight of St. Louis, and named Legardeur de St. Pierre. He received Washington very courteously, read Dinwiddie's letter, and he with his brother officers retired to consult as to what answer should be sent it. Meanwhile the Major used his eyes busily, jotting down the minutest particular and finding in fifty birch and one hundred and seventy-five pine canoes drawn up along the beach, a startling confirmation of Joncaire's boast that a fort was to be built, as soon as Spring opened, at the Fork? of the Ohio. The one-eyed Knight of St. Louis, too, had boldly bid claim to all the territory as far east as the Allegheny mountains. With the important news he had gathered, Washington hastened down the creek by canoe, reaching Joncaire again on December 2 2d. Here the horses were found so weak and the baggage so heavy, that they were given up, and after going with them three days, Washington and Gist, guns in hand and packs on back, started through the woods on foot, piloted by a bad and treacherous Indian guide. The very next day a party of French Indians lay in wait for them, and one of them, writes Washington, in his journal, " fired at Mr. Gist or me, not fifteen steps off, but fortunately missed. We took this fellow into cus- tody, and kept him until about nine o'clock at night, then let him go, and walked all the remaining part of the night without making any stop. The next day we continued traveling until quite dark, and got to She Allegheny about two miles from Shannopins. We expected to have found the river frozen, but it was not, only about fifty yards from each shore. The ice, I suppose, had broken up above, for it was driving in vast quantities." Washington Hurled into the River and Shot at by a Savage, " There was no way for getting over," continues the Major's journal, " but on a raft, which we set about with but one poor hatchet, and fin- Washington Hurled into the River and Shot at. 21 ished just after sunsetting. This was a whole day's work f We next got it launched, then went on board of it and set off, but before we were half way over, we were jammed in the ice in such a manner that we expected every moment our raft to sink, and ourselves to perish. I put out my setting pole to try and stop the raft that the ice might pass by, when the rapidity of the stream threw it with so much violence against the pole, that it jerked me out into ten feet of water ; but I for- tunately saved myself by catching hold of one of the raft logs. " Notwithstanding all our efforts, we could not get to either shore, but were obliged, as we were near an island, to quit our raft and make to it. The cold was so extremely severe that Mr. Gist had all his fin- gers and some of his toes frozen; and the water was shut up so hard that we found no difficulty in getting off the island on the ice in the morning, and went to Mr. Frazier's. As we intended to take horses here, and it required some time to find them, I went up about three miles to the mouth of the Youghiogheny to visit Queen Alaquippa, who had expressed great concern that we passed her in going to the fort. I made her a present of a match-coat and a bottle of rum, which latter was thought much the better present of the two." This island was Wainwright's Island, now almost completely destroyed, but which lay near Herr's, and is about three miles above the Ohio forks The former island lay near the eastern bank, and that branch of the river might well freeze over in a night, but the wide channel be- tween Herr's Island and Shannopins could scarcely so easily freeze over. Now, Gist also kept a journal on this memorable expedition. His ac- count of the attempt by the Indian guide at murder is so very credita- ble to Washington's kind and humane heart that we will quote the pas- sage at length: "We rose early in the morning, and set out about two o'clock, and got to Murderingtown, on the south-east fork of Beaver Creek. Here we met an Indian whom I thought I had seen at Joncaire's. This fel- low called me by my Indian name and pretended to be glad to see me. I thought very ill of the fellow, but did not care to let the Major know I mistrusted him. But he soon mistrusted him as much as I did. The Indian said he could hear a gun from his cabin, and steered us more northwardly. We grew uneasy, and then he said two whoops might be heard from his cabin. We went two miles further. Then the Major said he would stay at the next water, and we desired the Indian to stop at the next water. We came to water; we came to a clear meadow. It was very light, and snow was on the ground. "The Indian made a stop, and turned about. The Major saw him point his gun towards us and he fired. Said the Major, 'Are you shot?' 22 Our Western Border. 'No!' said I; upon which the Indian ran forward to a big standing white oak, and began loading his gun, but we were soon with him. 1 would have killed him, but the Major would not suffer me. We let him charge his gun; we found he put in ball; then we took care of him; either the Major or I always stood by the guns. We made him make a fire for us by a little run, as if we intended to sleep there. I said to the Major, 'As you will not have him killed, we must get him away, and then we must travel all night;' upon which I said to the Indian: 'I suppose you were lost, and fired your gun.' He said he knew the way to his cabin, and it was but a little way. 'Well,' said I, 'do you go home, and as we are tired, we will follow your track in the morning; and here is a cake of bread for you, and you must give us meal for it in the morning.' He was glad to get away. I followed him and lis- tened until he was fairly out of the way, and then we went about half a mile, when we made a fire, set our compass, fixed our course, and traveled all night. In the morning we were at the head of Piny Creek." All doubts as to French claims and intentions were removed by Wash- ington's important visit. In order to arouse the Colonies and Britain, Governor Dinwiddie had the Major's journal published far and wide, and reprinted in England, which led to very important and immediate action, since it was the first positive intelligence of the views and de- signs of the French. Instant steps were taken by Dinwiddie to send troops to the Ohio forks, which were at that time supposed by him to belong to his province. One company, under command of Captain Trent, was soon ready, and early in April Ensign Ward reached the forks, and commenced work on a rude fortification. They had made but little progress, however, before a French-Indian force of a thousand men, with eighteen cannon, suddenly made their appearance on the Al- legheny, in sixty batteaux and three hundred canoes, and an immediate summons to surrender their works was made on Ward by Contrecoeur. Tannacharison, the Half King, who was present with Ward, in order to gain time, shrewdly urged him to reply that he had no authority to sur- render but would send for orders. To this, of course, the French leader would not listen, but gave just one hour to retire, which poor Ward was compelled to do. The French then landed and built there a fort, first giving it the name of "The Assumption of the Holy Virgin," after- wards changing it to Fort Duquesne, in honor of the Marquis Duquesne, the then French Governor of Canada; and this little affair has always been considered as the commencement of that long and memorable "seven years' war," only terminated by the Treaty of Paris, and by which France ceded to England all Canada and almost the whole terri« tory east of the Mississippi. Washington's First Campaign. 23 Washington's First Campaign — Surrender of Fort Necessity. Washington immediately sent expresses to the Governors of Pennsyl- vania, Maryland and Virginia, acquainting them with the forced sur- render of Ward's company and the erection of a fort in what was then clearly considered to be part of Virginia. He himself proceeded — as soon as he could gather the force — at the head of three companies, to the Monongahela, at the point now occupied by Brownsville, Pa. He soon received a message frcm his old friend Tannacharison, the Half King, that the French from Fort Duquesne were marching against him. Next day Col. Gist, who had formed a frontier settlement near where Uniontown, Pa., now stands, joined him with the startling news that a French force of fifty men had been at his place the day before. Close on the heels of these tidings arrived another message from the Half King, who was then encamped with his warriors some six miles distant, with information that the French had encamped near him, and urging Washington to "strike" them. Washington immediately started with forty men to join his faithful ally. The night was pitch dark \ the rain fell in torrents ; the woods were pathless and tangled with undergrowth, and the soldiers often lost their way groping through the matted bushes and clambering over logs and rocks, but at length they arrived at the Indian camp just before sun- rise, May 28, 1754. A council with the Red Chief was held at once, and a joint attack on the French was resolved upon. Two Indian spies discovered the enemies' position in an obscure place surrounded by rocks and about a half mile from the main trail. Washington was to advance on the right, the Half King on the left. They all then stealthily approached in single file until discovered by the French, who flew to arms. The action commenced by a sharp firing on both sides, but in a very brief time the French had succumbed, with the loss of Monsieur Jumonville, their commandant, and ten of his men. Tv/enty-two were taken prisoner and sent off to Dinwiddie. This was the very first "baptism of blood" received by Washington, and the affair was afterwards misrepresented, greatly to his injury. It was also the first overt act in a long war which had not yet been declared, but which for many years after deluged all Europe in blood. The news of this fateful action stirred up a tremendous hubbub, not only in the American Colonies, but in England and France. War had not yet been generally declared, and it was the policy of each govern- ment to throw the blame of commencing hostilities on the other party. It was officially charged by France that Jumonville was leading an 24 Our Western Border. embassy of peace, and that while conveying a civil summons to Wash- ington, asserting the French claim to all the country watered by the Ohio and its tributaries, and requesting the English forces to retire, he was waylaid and assassinated. Unfortunately some color was given to this charge of assassination against Washington afterwards in the articles of capitulation at Fort Necessity, when the word assassination instead of killing was, through the stupid blundering of Van Braam, the interpreter, allowed to stand, making it appear as if Washington confessed the base charge. The whole affair has been carefully examined and discussed by English and American historians, and, without entering into the de- tailed pros and cons of the controversy, we need only state that the result was a complete and triumphant vindication of Washington. Among the prisoners taken by Washington was a Mr. La Force, who was known throughout the whole western country as an uncommonly bold and enterprising leader of great subtlety and exercising a potent sway among the Indians. As Washington knew that the news of this successful assault upon Jumonville would draw on him an attack in overwhelming force from Fort Duquesne, he set his troops at once to prepare an entrenched work at the Great Meadows., which he named Fort Necessity. The Half King, Queen Alaquippa and their friendly Indians began to flock in, and Cap- tain Mackay with a South Carolina company joined him most oppor- tunely. Shortly after a company of nine deserters from Fort Duquesne arrived with the startling tidings that the French, Dy their artful wiles and bountiful presents, had induced the warlike tribes of Delawares and Shawnees to " dig up the hatchet " against the English and would soon appear in force. Shortly after friendly Indians brought the news that the French at the forks had been heavily reinforced from Canada, and were prepar- ing to march against him and drive him out of the country. Washing- ton, for many reasons not needful here to enumerate, resolved to abide the issue at Fort Necessity, situated near the Laurel Hill and about fifty miles west of Cumberland, Md. Trees were felled, breast-works were strengthened, and all put in the best possible state of defence. On the 3d of July, the enemy "put in an appearance." Washing- ton had drawn up his men on the flat outside of the trenches, but find- ing the foe in superior force and that they refused an open encounter, but were using all their arts to circumvent him, he retired his men and gave them permission to fire at discretion. A brisk fire was main- tained all day by an enemy that never dared to emerge from the sheltering cover of the woods. An untimely rain filled the trenches Washington's First Campaign. 25 with water, the provisions and ammunition were exhausted, and many of the miserable, worthless arms of the soldiers were out of order ; so that, when a very civil summons for a parley came from the French leader, M. de Villiers, a brother of Jumonvilie, Washington was ready to negotiate. The result was a capitulation under very favorable terms, the whole garrison being allowed to retire to the east, taking all their effects with them except their artillery, and to march out of the fort with the hon- ors of war, their drums beating and colors flying. Washington agreed on his part, to restore the prisoners who had been taken at the late skirmish with Jumonvilie, and as a surety for this article, Captain Van Braam and Major Robert Stobo, (of the latter of whom we shall speed- ily say more and nothing to his discredit,) were delivered to the French as hostages. It was moreover agreed that the English should not at- tempt to build any more establishments west of the mountains for the space of one year. Washington accordingly marched forth next day, but had gone but a short distance when a large body of hostile French Indians surrounded them and could hardly be restrained from an attack. They pilfered the baggage and did other mischief. Washington finally, after being com- pelled to leave much baggage behind, reached Wills Creek in safety. Much dissatisfaction, however, prevailed in the colonies where the terms of this capitulation were published. The war spirit against these overt acts of the French was rising to fever heat. The truth is that Wash- ington had been grossly deceived by the interpreter, Van Braam, either through his ignorance or his design. He was a Dutchman and it is probable erred through his ignorance of the French language. Be this as it may, the Virginia House of Burgesses approved Washington's cam- paign and he was accorded a vote of thanks. It was ever a matter of mortification to him, however, that Dinwiddie refused to ratify that ar- ticle of the capitulation regarding the return of the French prisoners who instead were sent to England. Thus it happened that Major Robert Stobo, the hostage given to the French for their return, was for man/ years kept in confinement, and had a series of remarkable adventures which we shall now proceed to relate. 26 Our Western Border. REMARKABLE ADVENTURES OF MAJOR ROBERT STOBO, This gallant and indomitable Scotchman had scarce arrived at Fort Duquesne before he began casting about how he should put it into the hands of the English. With a boldness that while it challenges admira- tion, yet savors much of rashness, he entrusted to the hands of friendly Indians, two highly interesting letters, signed openly with his own name. Had his messengers proved faithless, Stobo's life would at once have paid the forfeit, but the brave Major, as we shall speedily find, was a patriot of the true metal and perfectly willing to take all conse- quences. These letters contained a very accurate plan of the fort ; an account of the amount and disposition of the forces ; gave much news of the savages and of the artful lies which the French had employed to make them hostile to their old friends, the English, and furnished many valu- able hints as to how the fort could be easily taken, and urged upon Washington to immediately make an advance and capture it. They also contained such expressions as these: "If this news is true," (alluding to some Indian defection), "it will make our return very hazardous, but that is not to be considered." "La Force," (the French leader captured by Washington), "is greatly wanted here. No scouting now — he certainly must have been an extraordinary man among them, he is so much regretted and wished for." "When we engaged to serve the country, it was expected we were to do it with our lives. Let the country not be disappointed. Consider the good of the expedition without the least regard to us. For my part I would die a thousand deaths to have the pleasure of possessing this fort but for one day. They are so vain of their success at the Meadows, it is worse than death to hear them." "Strike this Fall as soon as possible. Make the In- dians ours. Prevent intelligence. Get the best, and 'tis done. One hundred trusty Indians might surprise the fort." "The French manage the Indians with the greatest artifice. La Force is greatly missed here. Let the good of the expedition be considered preferable to our safety. Haste to strike." The whole spirit breathing through these letters was so bold, manly and self-sacrificing, that the Pittsburgh historian, Neville B. Craig, made repeated efforts to learn more about the gallant Major. The informa- tion he gathered was of the most meagre description. Later, he hap- pened to be rummaging over an old book, and the first words that taught his eye were "Captain Stobo," which were included in a lettei Adventures of Major Robert Stobo. 27 from one English historian to another — David Hume to Tobias Smollet. It ran thus: "I did not see your friend, Captain Stobo, till the day be- fore I left Civencester, and then only for a little time, but he seemed to be a man of good sense, and has surely had the most extraordinary ad- ventures in the world." All this only increased Craig's zeal and curiosity to know something more of the mysterious Stobo, and, in answer to a public call for in- formation, he was fortunate enough to obtain from the British Museum a manuscript copy of the "Memoirs of Major Robert Stobo," which he republished in Pittsburgh about twenty years ago. From these memoirs, written in a quaint, old-fashioned style, we learn that Robert Stobo was born at Glasgow, Scotland, in 1727, and was of a very delicate constitution. He received a good education, but early betrayed a love for arms, employing his play -hours in a constant drum- beating and drilling his comrades. Losing his excellent parents, his friends determined to carry out his own wishes of emigrating to Vir- ginia, in order to serve in a store there, owned by Glasgow merchants. He soon began business for himself, returning to Glasgow in '47, converting all his property into ready money and merchandise, and re- turning to America, where his natural goodness of disposition, joined with a turn for gaiety and social pleasure, made his acquaintance much courted by the best people of the province. He kept open house and dispensed his hospitality with such a free and liberal hand, that when his friend, Gov. Dinwiddie, was raising a regiment to oppose French aggression in the Ohio Valley, he was glad to receive the commission of captain. For this campaign he provided with his usual munificence, hiring ten servants, furnishing himself with a covered wagon, keeping a bountiful table, well garnished with game and wine, which was open to all his brave officers. He soon became a great favorite with the regi- ment, and displayed military talents of no mean order. He it was who planned and erected Fort Necessity, the capitulation of which brought him to Fort Duquesne as an hostage. His bold letters from that fort have been already referred to. They had a curious fate, and in the end worked much damage to the writer. The letters came safely to Washington's hands, were forwarded to Gov. Dinwiddie, went into possession of Gen. Braddock when making his expedition against Fort Duquesne, and then fell into possession of the enemy, having been left behind with the rest of Braddock's baggage ifter the disastrous defeat of that general at Braddocks Fields. When the French found that La Force and the other prisoners were lot to be returned according to the terms of the Fort Necessity capitu- ation, Stobo and Van Braam were removed, in September, 1754* fr° ra 28 Our Western Border. one French fort to another, till at last they reached Quebec. They, however, were treated with great kindness and liberality, Stobo having, on account of his free, jovial manners, been admitted to the society of the French officers, thought it necessary to study French, in which pleasant occupation he was greatly assisted by several French ladies, who taught him how to talk and pronounce and made much of him generally. In fact no company was thought complete unless the gallant and accomplished Monsieur Stobo made one of it. He, at the same time, became very popular among the French Indians, studying their language, customs, sports, &c, and was so much esteemed by them that the honor of the Mississaga Indian nation was conferred upon him, the ceremony of his adoption into the tribe having been pricked by means of sharp fish bones and indelible juices into his two thighs immediately above his garters. " Setting aside," says his biographer, " the gentleness of his manners, there was something in his appearance very engaging; he was nearly six feet tall, of a dark brown complexion, had a penetrating eye, an aquiline nose, round face, a good cheerful countenance, a very genteel person, rather slender than robust, and was graceful in his whole deportment." But a sudden change was all at once" to come over his fortunes. When the Braddock papers came to be published in France, his two famous letters, with his own name attached, came into notoriety, and he was by the press denounced as a dangerous spy. The French officers now began to look frowningly at him, but he still managed to preserve his credit among his many lady friends. It was now con- cluded to treat him with rigor as a suspect. He was clapped into prison and used with great harshness. Next came an order from France to the Governor of Canada to try him for his life as a spy. Some time in '56 he effected his escape from prison, but a reward of 6,000 livres, offered to any who would bring him in alive or dead, filled the woods with thousands of eager persons, and he was soon caught and thrust into a black, horrible dungeon. He found nothing but cold stone to sit or lie on, and on the floor was daily placed an earthen pan with nothing but bread and water for his sustenance. In this damp, dark, dreary, dismal, doleful, damnable dungeon his eyes soon acquired such a power that they could discern a rat running over the floor, and it may be added that they received much exercise in that line. In November our hero was brought before the military court, arraigned for breach of faith and violating the laws of nations. His condemnation was a foregone conclusion. The vote was put, and hang he must by general voice. The day was fixed, and he was remanded Adventures of Major Robert Stobo. 29 back to prison. But his indomitable heart was yet unshaken, and he busied himself meditating over plans of escape. The judgment of the court, however, was not approved by King Louis, and the dungeon was changed for a jail, with two vigilant sentinels at the door and two below the one window, but fortuna favet fortibus. They could not hold a man of his daring spirit. Many were his plans of escape. The window offered him the best chance. He found it firmly barred with iron up and down, but not across. He must cut a groove in the hard stone, so as to throw one of the bars aside. He had but a sorry knife, round at the point, and as it would imperil all to make a noise, his business must be done by careful, silent rubbing. The work went slowly on. Meanwhile he must gather provisions for his long journey. He managed to secrete a sort of a knapsack, and on the stove he parched grain to carry with him. Hia room was always open to his jailers, and he had to fill the groove as fast as he made it by stuffing it with chewed bread, which was then covered with sand or ashes. Sometimes the grating noise would bring in the jailer, but the groove was so neatly concealed and the Major was generally found sitting so calmly, walking, smoking or reading, that, after peering around the room with jealous eye, the jailer was fain to depart with shaking head. At length the groove was done ; the bar had room to play, but being short and fast at top, the Major could not bend it. Tying his handker- chief around the two bars, he inserted a stick and by twisting it about had leverage enough to bring the bars together. The knapsack was now stored with over thirty pounds of various kinds of provisions which he had managed to secrete, and all was ready for the escape. The 30th of April was a horrible day from wind, rain and hail. The night was no better. The sleepy sentries, suspecting naught, sought favorable shelter from the wretched weather. Stobo's eyes were on guard and soon as he saw the parts deserted he knew his time had come. Hurriedly tying about him his knapsack and applying the handkerchief tourniquet, a passage was soon opened and down he jumped into the mud below, and is off like a shot. Soaked with rain, buffeted by the wind, straight on he flies, certain of his way. Far above the town he took refuge in a farmer's outhouse and anxiously awaited the chance for escape. His flight was at once detected ; again 6,000 livres were offered for his arrest, and out set the whole town in search. For two days, know- ing that many would be seeking him, the Major lay snug. At midnight he stealthily stole out and made straight for Charles river, crossed it with knapsack on his head, the water coming up to his chin. Now he gains 30 Our Western Border. the friendly covert of the woods, where he remained the next day ; to- wards evening he edges down the river, hoping to secure a canoe wherewith to cross the St. Lawrence. He wandered on and on until he had got below the Falls of Montmorenci, eight miles below Quebec, when just as he had set foot on the great road, he spied some gentlemen riding towards him, who unfortunately were just as quick in spying hira and made hard after him. He was caught and dragged back to prison. Who can imagine the sad, gloomy thoughts of the poor prisonei? That can his biographer, who thus quaintly laments this sad relapse into captivity : "111 used before, better could not be hoped for ; he sick- ens at the thought of his sad fate \ a dreary while for him to linger out in sad despondency, well barred and bolted in with treble vigilance. A long, long Summer and a dismal Winter were to come, and these, for what he knew, might be repeated, if life so long wouM stay. He could not stand the thought ; his spirits failed him ; his looks grew pale ; corroding, pensive thought sat brooding on his forehead, and left it all in wrinkles ; his long, black hair grows like a badger grey ; his body to a shadow wastes, and ere the Winter came with her keen edge of har- dened cold, his health was gone ; yet he must struggle still with the re- maining span of life, for out he must not come and he's given up for dead. There dwelt by lucky fate in this strong capital, a lady fair of chaste renown ; of manners sweet and gentle soul ; long had her heart confessed for this poor prisoner a flame, best suited with the spirit of the times to smother, whose tender heart felt double smart at this his deep affliction which threatened certain death; her kindred was confessed and influence, too, well known with Vaudreuil and, strange speech of love, thus she accQsts the proud Canadian Vice Roy," &c. We need not give this tender love song, but the burden of it was an urgent appeal to change the Major's prison and give him exercise and good air, and so a chance for his life. The prayer prevailed. The wan and wasted prisoner was allowed to walk the ramparts. By the care of this kind lady and her daughter, the Major's health recovers by degrees, and he became very watchful and studious to disarm all suspicion. The months passed on and Stobo made the acquaintance of some English prisoners brought in — among others a Scotchman, by the name of Clarke, a ship carpenter by trade, who, by a facile and timely change of religion, was released and was soon employed at work in the shipyard. With this man and another prisoner by name of Stevenson, he concocts a new scheme. In order to dismiss his kind lady attendant, he feigned illness. Instead of going to bed, however, he dressed in a plain coarse workman's dress he had provided; incased his head in a thick worsted Major Stobo's Escape from Quebec. 31 w\g and quietly stole down the stairs, past the rooms of the family that had been so kind to him, out into the garden, and leaped the wall. No sooner out of town than he quickened his pace and made his way to a little windmill on the river, which was fixed as the rendezvous for the whole escaping party. He found them all there, with guns, ammuni- tion and provisions. March was the word, and Stobo, as leader of this gallant little band of five, moved along the river for a couple of miles in hope to find some vessel by which to escape. Major Stobo's Escape from Quebec and Daring Adventures. At length they came across a large birch canoe, which they carried to the water, and all safely embarked. With nimble hands they plied the paddles, and flew down the strong current of the St. Lawrence. By daylight Quebec was left far behind, and they sought the protection of the woods, carrying their canoe with them. As before, the Major's flight was early discovered. The whole house was in a terrible uproar. The Governor hears of it, and is moved to a terrible wrath. The old reward is offered, and thousands ransack the woods for the fugitives. This time in vain ! The little party lay by quietly all day, but soon as night came on they launch again their frail bark upon the current, and paddle away like all possessed. By daylight they were, with their fragile canoe, in the woods again. This was their life for ten long days and chilling nights, until they had gotten a long distance below the city, and the river had grown as broad as a firth. Latterly they had taken the risk of hunting game, and encamped by day in order to save their stock of provisions, which was getting low. On the eleventh night they paddled out into the middle of the broad river, but soon encountered a violent storm. The waves broke over them. The canoe filled with water, and they tried in vain to make the shore, but passed the night, tossed like a cork upon the waters, and only saved from wreck by unintermitting bailing. A piercing cold now set in, freezing their drenched clothes to their backs. By morning they suc- ceeded in again reaching shore, but in a most sorry plight. Their fro- zen garments rattled like coats of mail; scarce one could lift a limb, and a mother and children, who formed part of their crew, were almost dead. The steel and flint were found wherewith to build a fire, but the tinder was too wet to catch. At length the poor mother sought in her bosom and found a dry rag; a fire was built, and a couple of days more are spent drying and thaw- ing out. The boat was again trusted to the waves, and by morning had reached a little bay, on whose shores they debarked, the two marksmen going out for game. They soon ran back, frightened by the appearance 32 Our Western Border. of two armed savages. Stobo reassured them, and demanded to be led to a sight of them, thinking that if they were scouts for a larger party, it might be necessary to cut them off. They soon came upon the two unsuspecting savages, when Stobo broke out into a French cantata, and saluting the savages in French, seized the gun of one, while Stevenson grappled him and Clarke the other. Stobo then said they were French- men, but in search of English prisoners who had escaped, and that he must be sure who they were. They were much alarmed, and offered to lead the way to their tent and to the fire, of which they were the guar- dians, so that the whole country might be alarmed at the advance up the river of any hostile British fleet. These fires, they said, were placed at regular distances from the mouth of the St. Lawrence to Quebec, so that news could be speedily carried of any hostile invasion. The wigwam was found full of furs, wild duck and maple sugar, and the Major's party began to rifle it. The Indians now realized their mis- take, and the one Stevenson held gave a backward spring and set up a dreadful yell. To prevent any further noise, Stevenson had to shoot his man, and his comrade was soon made to share his fate. The camp again reached, Stobo thought it was imprudent to leave the bodies un- buried, and sent back Clarke and another to inter them, which they did by fastening a heavy stone to the feet of each, and, having carefully re- moved the scalps, shoving them into a deep, black pool of water. Their poor, faithful dog, which sat howling on the margin of the pool, was also shot. They now saw out in the river a fleet of French transports, with a convoy, ferrying their slow way up to Quebec. One ship in the rear, judged, by her size, to be the commodore of the fleet, was lying to. Stobo concluded that she had seen their smoke and had sent her boat ashore to learn the meaning of it. The fire, therefore, was put out, and the canoe and baggage moved off into the woods, and then a round- about course taken to the river again. They now espied a large four- cared batteau rowing for the shore and no ship in view. "Courage, fry lads!" cried the fearless Stobo. "I hope, by your assistance and God's blessing on our arms, this prize shall be our own; these men our prisoners, too, and they shall lessen your fatigue and row for us; ob- serve but what I order, and leave the rest to me." Stobo's party now lay closely concealed among some rocks while the boat's crew pulled briskly in. Scarce had the prow bumped the beach when a volley was sent in among them, by which two were wounded. The astonished Frenchmen at once cried out for quarter. The Major and his companions rushed down from the rocks and ordered out the whole five. A reverend old gentleman, who was steering, stepped out Major Stobo's Escape from Quebec. 33 with a polite bow of submission, and very naturally asked whose pris- oner he was. To this the Major answered in French: "We are British subjects, and, by the fortune of the war which now does rage betwixt that country's mighty King and France, we have been prisoners in Can- ada, but now," &c, telling them that they and their boat must aid their escape. To this the old Frenchman said he had been a long distance down the river, and was returning with his boat laden with wheat ; that he was the Chevalier La Darante, and sole owner of the Camaraski Isles, the first gentlemen of them all doing him vassalage; that the best blood of Canada ran in his veins, as he was kin to the great Duke de Mirepoix and other prominent French nobles, and that, in addition to all this, he was old and feeble, and therefore should well be excused from being compelled to row his enemies. To all which, in brief, the Major answered that self-preservation was the first law of nature, and that if he were King Louis himself, and each of his crew a peer of the realm, he would have to row now British subjects. This ended the matter. As the shallop was too deep-laden for expedition, much of the wheat was cast out, and, all hands em- barking, the boat left the shore, the faithful canoe dragging astern. Thus doubly manned, they could relieve the oars as well as attend the sail, which was now set to a favoring gale, and away they sped again down the St. Lawrence. Finding the canoe impeding the shallop's speed, it was cut loose and turned adrift. To lie by in the day was now impossible, neither did the Major like much to trust his prisoners ashore. About noon they noted a lofty frigate, which had been convoy to the fleet of transports. This sudden and dreadful apparition gave no small alarm, but since they could not stand a fight, a run was resolved upon. So the Major took the tiller and swore that the first man who offered to impede the boat's way should die in the instant, and ordered all to pull hard and to spread the sail, so as to pass the frigate's stern. The usual signal to heave to came from the frigate, but our party paid it no attention; a second followed, which was likewise disre- garded. The third report came accompanied by a shot which whizzed over their heads, uncomfortably near. Then followed shot after shot, as long as the boat was in sight. Rejoicing at their lucky escape, the boat flew along, continuing on its course all night. The old Cheva- lier's remonstrance as to the hardships and indignities he was com- pelled to undergo, passed unheeded. " II est fortune de guerre, Mon- sieur," was all the reply vouchsafed by the Major. Days sped on. Capes, islands and mountains were passed, one by one, but fortunately no sail was met. At length a boat was found 3 34 Our Western Border. upon the beach, when Stobo promised to the Chevalier that he would let him go if he would promise for him and his party that he would keep secret what had transpired till the Camaraski Isles should be passed ; after that he did not care. The Chevalier readily promised. " Then, Monsieur," replied the Major, loftily, " your mast and sail are ours. Our case is desperate, but I'll pay you for them. Here, too, is money for your lost wheat. Go tell all Canada how good the British monarch is ! One only favor I ask. When you reach Quebec, pray wait on the Commandant with Monsieur Stobo's compliments, and let him know you saw him thus far on the St. Lawrence." All things being ready, the two parties took separate ways. Stobo's boat continued along all night. With the morning they espied abreast of them a ship at anchor and heard the signal to heave to. This they declined, when a swivel, loaded with grape, opened fire and after that another, completely riddling their sail but doing no further damage. On they pushed all that day and the next, but after that they were not quite so fortunate. Towards evening a dreadful storm arose. At the point they now were, the St. Lawrence was very broad and the waves ran as high as upon the ocean, while the surf was quite as loud and dangerous. To beach the boat, however, is the only salvation for them, and straight to shore they let her drive. Near the shore, she came upon a rock with a dreadful shock, bursting open the boat's bows and filling her with water. The waves break over them and all hands, taking with them what they could, make for shore. The boat was completely de- molished. Soaking as they were, a wet and dreary night was passed. Next morning a sober council was held. All other methods of es- cape except by water are declared impossible, and so the boat's wreck is hauled ashore, and all, under the direction of Clarke the ship carpen- ter, set to work to make it sea-worthy again. With wistful search they scan the shore for nails, pieces of board and what not to piece the old hulk up. Some eight days are spent in this tedious and disheartening work, and the stock of provisions was, too, getting fearfully low. At length the boat was ready for the first pitch and oakum, carefully gathered from sticks found along many miles of shore. Stockings, handkerchiefs and other articles of dress were used to stuff the joints, and at last the frail cutter was ready for launching. Just as this interesting ceremony was about to be performed, two sails are seen standing down the river, and finally their anchors are dropped right off the point where the crazy vessel sat upon the stocks. Here was a strange dilemma ! All labor stops at once ! Down squat the men ! The sails of the strange vessels are all pulled down, in prepara- tion for riding out the flood tide. Major Stobo Captures two Ships. 35 Major Stobo Captures two Ships with all on Board. A-t this crisis, a daring and desperate idea enters Stobo's pate. They were in a terrible strait. Starvation on the one hand; renewed slavery on the other. "Here are two enemy's vessels," he said, "and bv their distance one may be attacked; nor by their meaa appearance should I think them freight with men or arms ; more like some country vessels and so I'll wish and hope and think ; and now, could I divide the force of either and calmly, under cloud of night, steal on her by sur- prise, then might I hope success. The very thought elates my soul. By jove, she's mine ! This next is the smallest of the two ; on her the pro - jert shall immediately be tried." A council is called; all hear with wonder, and promise to assist. Stobo orders them not to stir, but to keep close to the ground, while he should give a signal. Cutting a long stick he fastens thereon his hand- kerchief, and with it in one hand and a musket in the other, he coolly marches to the water's edge and fires his gun and waves his extemporized flag. The sun was just setting. His signal is seen from the ship. A boat is observed dropping over the side and two men and a boy came rowing to the shore where the redoubtable Major stands ready to re- ceive them. Approaching near they yet warily stand off and ask what he wants. Stobo answers in pretty good French that he was on the king's errand, (" under which King, Benzonian? speak or die ! ") and now he wants a passage down the river, for which he would willingly pay liberally. The night was cold and he had a bottle of rum which they were wel- come to if they would fetch it, &c. The boat is driven to shore and hauled upon the beach, and while guzzling down the rum, violent hands are laid upon them, and the three are taken and bound. All is fair in war, thinks Major Stobo, and he tells his astounded vic- tims that they are in British hands subject to death, but " look here, my lads ! you yet may live, if you faithfully declare what hands you left on boaid and what their arms." They are examined separately and all agree. The boy consents to pilot them aboard, as the Major thought his well-known voice might answer unpleasant questions and disarm all suspicion. It was now darkest night. The two prisoners were bound each to a tree and the one woman, with drawn tomahawk, left to guard them. The patched-up vessel is then taken off the stocks and launched, the ship's boat being considered too small to carry six. She leaks badly, it is true, but she'll doubtless last to reach the ship. While two row, two more are kept busy bailing, and to this there was no let up. "Off 36 Our Western Border. they go, and rowing softly on with silent stroke, came alongside the ship. A light there's in the binnacle, but ne'er a watch on deck \ they're all hands down ; the sloop rode fair ; her buoy was clear ahead, the weather moderate and some turn in to sleep, for yet 'twas not half flood. The rest, at ease, enjoy themselves below." " Our hero first gets up the side, and as he softly stepped up on the deck, the trusty pistol, which in his belt was stuck, catches the ratlins of the shrouds which pulls it out, and it comes clatter on the deck. This gave the alarm, but woe to him who first came up ! So soon as he had shown his face at the companion door and bounding up, so soon the Major let fly a shot in this surprise, and down the fellow tumbled. The shot had hit him right along the back and grazed the bone, but he's not killed, but quarter was the word and now the rest are all upon the deck. The prisoners he orders one by one down to the hold, the master only left and then he locks the hatches, and then he questions freely. l That schooner there above is my consort, and we are bound to Gaspee to bring provisions for three hundred Indians now assembled at Miramichi and Aristigush, under the command of Monsieur Bohaber, and who, on our return, are to proceed to Quebec to reinforce that gar- rison."' The Major is suddenly fired with the wish to prevent these Indians from joining his country's foes. By further querying he finds the schooner has ten men, but no gun or carriage or a swivel ; of this last sort the sloop had six, all on one side. The windlass is now manned, the anchor is apeek, and now she's under way, and steered by Stobo straight for the schooner. " Stand firm, my lads," said Stobo, in low, collected tones, " this is a glorious night, and as for you, Monsieur, if you should once but mutter, your life that moment shall surely pay the cost." Stobo now laid the sloop right alongside the schooner, and by his stern orders, a dose from all the swivels is poured into her at once. She was then boarded without one instant's delay, her crew instantly calling out for quarter. This was a most extraordinary deed of Stobo's ! How must that lit- tle band have been dazed at this daring and unexpected assault ! Stobo now stood, with cocked musket, at the companion door; boldly ordered down the prisoners, one by one, from the sloop; removed everything valuable from the latter and smaller vessel; transferred the swivels, and then deliberately set fire to the sloop, which lights up the whole heavens with her funeral pyre. All this time the poor woman stood trembling on the shore, keeping guard over the first two prisoners. When the thunder of the broadside Major Stobo Captures two Ships. 37 was heard, the noise went to her heart like death's last summons. She was sure the guns were fired at Stobo and the rest, since she knew they had no guns. She was just about to surrender herself to her own two prisoners, and to entreat them to save her and her children, when she sees the vessel a-fire. She fears and wonders, but keeps her own thoughts. Now Stobo selects two of his best men and two prisoners, and sends them ashore for the company there, and brought all safely on board. The hatches now being closed on no less than eighteen pris- oners, which are too many to be safe, they are ordered up by ones, and eight are sent adrift in the small boat, with provisions plenty, a musket and shot, and fishing tackle, when off sails the schooner under British rommand and worked by French sailors. The small boat's party made straight to shore, and thence to the near- est military post, and told all that had happened. The officer, having heard of Stobo's escape from Quebec and the munificent prize offered for his capture, at once raised every man that could be spared; armed a suitable vessel and made chase after the schooner. Too late ! by this time Stobo was too far ahead, and kept steadily on his course for several days, until the Island of St. John's appeared. By scudding along on one side of the isle, they chanced to miss a British fleet which was pass- ing towards the river by the other channel. The armed sloop in pursuit of them, however, had no such good luck, for she was captured by the British. At length our adventurous party sighted Cape Breton, away across the Gulf of St. Lawrence, and soon gained the British fortified port of Louisburg, having been full thirty-eight days making the voyage from Quebec. The news of this wonderful and gallant escape flew from mouih to mouth, and the whole place was in a ferment of excite- ment. Stobo was for a time the "observed of all observers." The schooner, with its valuable furs and other goods, was sold, and Stobo gave all his own share of the proceeds to the poor woman and her chil- dren, who had so long been his patient compag?ions du voyage. The Major himself had nobler and more patriotic ends in view. Two days only passed when behold Stobo on board an armed vessel about to join the expedition against Quebec. No danger in the river now is dreaded, and he is just as anxious to reach Quebec as he was formerly anxious to escape from it. Having arrived safely, Stobo at once waited on the British General Wolfe, told him who he was, and his intimate knowledge of the place where he had been so long confined, and asks for service. The General at once engaged him on reconnoi- tres, making him one of his own household. Once, when Wolfe was on a vessel closely examining the batteries about Montmorenci, an ene- 38 Our Western Border. my's ball hit the vessel, causing a splinter to grievously wound Stobo in the thigh. He was daily engaged to lead scouting parties in every di- rection, and soon became known throughout the whole fleet and army for his activity. Once, when Stobo was on the Admiral's ship, he was informed there was a French prisoner aboard who knew him, and found him to be the barber who used to dress his hair. Stobo ended the interview by taking him into his own service. The Major's thorough local information was of much use to Wolfe. When the great and successful assault was made, it was Stobo who pointed out the best place for a landing, and was then chosen to proceed to Boston by vessel as a courier, with important dis- patches and kind recommendations, to General Amherst. When the Atlantic was reached, the vessel was chased by a French privateer. Stobo, soon as he found the capture of the British vessel was inevitable, committed his dispatches to the deep, and determined to shoot his French valet to preserve his own life, but on the fellow solemnly swearing that he would never betray him, he removed his pistol from his temple and spared his life. The privateer had taken several British vessels, and had aboard more prisoners than they could well secure. When this new vessel, therefore, was captured, the crew, among whom the Major passed undetected, was packed into a sloop, but his valet was put in irons as a French deserter. The sloop was then sent adrift with one day's provisions, to find the port of Halifax, which they were four days reaching. Stobo had scarce set foot on land before he hastened to reach Amherst by land — a dreary and wonderful journey through almost a total wilderness. Of Stobo's difficulties and adventures during this tedious journey, we nave no information, but we do know that he safely reached Amherst and delivered his dispatches, as, also, that he attended that General as a volunteer in his Lake Champlain Expedition. That being concluded, he proceeded to Williamsburg, Virginia, arriving there in November, 1759, and was joyfully received by his old friends and associates in arms as one risen from the dead. The Virginia Assembly, soon as they could convene, resolved that a thousand pounds should be presented him, over and above, from the time of his rendering himself a hostage, as a reward for his zeal to his coun- try and a recompense for the great hardships he had suffered during his confinement in an enemy's country. The House of Burgesses also made an address to the Governor, desiring that he would take him under his especial favor and would promote him in the service, and passed also a motion of thanks for his "singular bravery and courage exerted on all occasions, and that Messrs. Nicholson, Bland and Washington should Major Stobo Captures two Ships. 39 wait on the Major to return him their thanks for his invaluable services;" to all which Stobo returned a most grateful answer. This was not all. The Major was now tendered a twelve months' leave, as Major of his regiment with full pay, if he should choose to*go to England, which generous offer was duly accepted, and early in 176c he took passage for Europe, with many letters of recommendation from Generals Amherst, Monkton and others. His troubles, however, it seems, were not yet quite over, for when the vessel was about entering the English Channel, she was chased and boarded by a French privateer. Stobo had taken the precaution to put himself in disguise, and to sink his letters many fathoms deep over the vessel's sides. The vessel was rummaged, the passengers were rifled of their watches and valuable prop- erty and the vessel released by paying the privateer twenty-five hundred pounds. The Major's share of this redemption money was a hundred and twenty-five pounds. Had the French only known who he was (for by this time the fame of his exploits had traveled far and near) no sum could have secured his release. The English port of Falmouth was now reached, and as Stobo was drawing on his coat to go on shore, he found, to his great surprise, un- der the arm-pit, a letter from General Monkton to the great Pitt, which had by some means escaped the fate of the others. He learned, how- ever, that the story of his marvelous adventures had preceded him. On arriving at London he drew up a modest narrative of what he had done and suffered and asked to have a command in his country's service. He was well received by Pitt, who held a long conference with him concerning America and gave him a strong letter to General Amherst, stationed at Boston, in which he signified the King's approbation of Stobo's success, and asked that Amherst as "a particular favor" would give him command in his own or Anstruther's regiment. Armed with this, the Major did not long delay, but in two days sailed back for America. The memoirs of Stobo, published by Craig, end at this point in his history. We can find no further allusion to him. Washington is said to have made mention of Stobo's being alive and probably residing in I^ondon as late as 1 771. It is most probable he was there in the Eng- lish service or had retired on half pay. If alive when the American Revolution broke out, he may not have had it in his heart to aid in oppressing a struggling people for whom he had once endured uncom- mon hardships, and who in turn had paid him graceful honors. 40 Our Western Border. BRADDOCK'S EXPEDITION AGAINST FORT DUQUESNE. The news of the capitulation of Fort Necessity created a great ex* citement throughout all the eastern colonies. It came upon them like " thunder from a clear sky." It was truly considered that if the pre- vious collision between Washington and Jumonville had rendered war between France and England possible, this later conflict at Fort Necessity had made it inevitable. In the mother countries the serious- ness of the crisis was at once recognized, and both governments, while diplomatically exchanging courteous notes or making mutual explana- tions, were quietly but busily preparing for war. England, however, at that period was badly governed. She moved slowly, and nothing whatever was done to resent the French aggression in the West during the whole of the year '54. While the French were making good their possessions west of the Allegheny river, building their forts, holding treaties, and plying all their arts with the Indians, the Colonies were doing little but wrangling among themselves or unitedly calling on the mother country for help. The year 1755, however, marked an ominous change. While both sides professed the most peaceful desires and intentions, preparations for a very vigorous conflict for the vast and rich domain stretching for thousands of miles west of the Allegheny mountains, were constantly going forward. Gen. Braddock, with two regiments, arrived in Feb- ruary as Commander-in-Chief of all His Majesty's forces in America, and the coming campaign contemplated the attack of four key-points of the French: Fort Duquesne, Niagara, Crown Point, and the French posts in Nova Scotia. To Braddock himself was committed the im- portant role of reducing Fort Duquesne. It was his belief that the British flag would be floating over it by the 1st of June, and it was his intention then to proceed north and reduce other French posts ; but it is " man who proposes but God who disposes." The French at Fort Duquesne had early news of Braddock's advance against them. They had few regular troops on which to rely, and were obliged to supplement them, as far as possible, by a gathering of the savages. To win these over and induce them to fight the English, was now the aim of Contrecceur, the commandant at Fort Duquesne. To this end shrewd and artful emissaries were dispatched among the Mingoes, Delawares and Shawnees, who, by crafty pow-wows, delusive Braddock's Expedition against Fort Duquesne. 41 promises and frequent distributions of gifts, succeeded in detaching them from their old allies, the English. Fortunately for their aims, a treaty that had been made with the Six Nations (who claimed the whole boundless West by right of conquest) a short time previous, at Albany, New York, had produced universal rage and disgust among the Ohio tribes. For a few beads, bells, blankets and trinkets, they found the whole territory they claimed and occupied as their own, now given away from under their feet. The Delawares, too, had never forgotten or forgiven the disgraceful swindle practiced on them in '37, and generally known in history by the Walking Purchase, and which we may describe hereafter. In brief, the Indians had been persuaded to give a very valuable tract of land on the Delaware as '.' far as a man could walk in a day and a half." In- stead of construing this contract as it was evidently meant, the best and most active walkers of the country were hunted up and put in training; at the same time a smooth road was laid out, so that no obstruction might be offered. By this means an incredible distance was gotten over, and' the outraged Delawares were justly indignant and refused to move and give up their villages and grain fields until compelled by the Iroquois, their masters. As one of the swindled remarked of the walkers: "White man no walk, no drink, no stop to rest or shoot squirrel, but run, run, run whole time." All this the French leaders, mingling familiarly among them, promised to win back for them, and with faces freshly painted and heads duly shaved and plumed for the war-path, the dusky warriors flocked in to Fort Duquesne. In fact the poor Indians were very much troubled and confused at this juncture. They were opposed to the encroachments of both French and English. One of their chiefs had, at one of these palavers, shreAvdly put the pertinent query, " Since the English claim all the lands on the other side of the Allegheny, and the French all the lands on this side, where, pray, do the Indians' lands lie? Tell me that!" Another chief, with equal appropriateness, had said, "You and the English are like the two blades of a pair of shears, and we like the cloth which is to be cut up between them." They had no union in their councils and seemed like a mob of bewildered children. In addition to the local savages drawn to the fort for its defence against Braddock's formidable army, there were scattered beneath the sombre forest around, Ojibwas and Ottawas, under the lead of the Sieur de Langlade and Nis-so-wa- quet ; and Hurons and Cauhnanagas, under the lead of Athanase, the Christianized Chief from Lorette, Canada. Among the prominent chiefs arrayed with them were Pontiac, Shingiss, Beaver and Catahe- cassa, all keen and cruel as wolves upon the scent of blood. 42 Our Western Border. And now let us stop to consider awhile who Major General Braddock was, and how well he was fitted for the important task before him. The Character of Gen. Braddock and his Army. Generalissimo of all His Majesty's troops in North America, and favorite of the great Duke of Cumberland, Major General Braddock was now full sixty years of age, over forty of which were passed in active military service with the famous " Cold Stream Guards." It is difficult within the compass of a few brief paragraphs to sketch his life and character. It is generally allowed, even by his bitterest enemies, that he was personally brave, honest, loyal, and well versed in military matters, but a rigid martinet, and too apt to rely on exact drill and dis- cipline exclusively for success. "Desperate in his fortunes > brutal in his behavior, obstinate in his sentiments," writes Walpole, " he was still intrepid and capable." Mr. Shirley, his own military secretary, in a confidential letter written while far on this march to Governor Morris, of Pennsylvania, says, "We have a General most judiciously chosen for being disqualified for the service he is in, in almost every respect. He may be brave for aught I know, and he is honest in pecuniary matters." In private life, it must be confessed, Braddock was, or rather had been, dissolute and reckless, keeping the low and disreputable company of London actors ; given to the debaucheries of his day and class — the bottle and the gaming table. Franklin, that keen observer of human nature, pronounced him a brave man and a good officer, but arrogant, having too much self-confidence, too high an opinion of regular troops, and too mean a one of both Indians and Americans. The old philoso- pher, when hearing Braddock' s account of what was to be done after Duquesne was taken, told him that the only fear he had, was from In- dian ambuscades and from the stretch of his attenuated line of march, nearly four miles long, which would be exposed to flank attacks and liable to be cut like a thread into several pieces. Braddock smiled at Franklin's ignorance, and replied, "These savages may, indeed, be a formidable enemy to your raw American militia, but upon the king's regular and disciplined troops, sir, it is impossible they should make any impression." The Indian opinion of him was given by Chief Scarrooyaddy to Governor Morris and the Pennsylvania Assembly three months after the defeat, which he attributed to pride and ignorance. " He is now dead," said the Half King, "but he was a bad man when alive : he looked upon us as dogs, and would never hear what we said to him ; and that's the reason why a great many of our warriors left him, and would not be under his command." Character of Gen. Braddock and his Army. 43 There are numerous incidents told of Braddock before his arrival on our shores. It is pretty certain, for instance, that he had once made a most unfeeling speech and a cruel pun when he heard of the sad death of his beautiful but unfortunate sister Fanny, who committed suicide under most distressing circumstances; that he was mean and base enough to live on the infamous wages of a notorious Mrs. Upton, in whose eyes he had found favor. He was known to be so needy that in one of his duels — this time with a Col. Gumley — his opponent, on coming on the ground, tossed him his purse, saying, "Braddock, you're a poor dog ; there, take my purse ; if you kill me, you'll have to run away, and then you'll not have a shilling to support you;" and finally, that he spent the last evening in London, prior to his departure for America, in the company of that frail actress, Miss Bellamy, then living as the reputed wife of a Mr. Calcraft, whom Braddock afterward made his executor. It is little wonder that the witty and sarcastic Walpole called him a " very Iroquois in disposition." But these were matters of the past. All authorities, foreign and provincial, unite in stating that since his arrival on our shores, the General had conducted himself with honesty, dignity and diligence, using his utmost energies to push matters forward — and this under the most vexatious and disheartening difficulties — and being exceedingly anxious to further the king's service. Had he been successful, as everybody expected he would have been, it is probable we would have heard little of him but praises. "Nothing is so successful as success." The worst that could be said of Braddock since his sojourn in America, was that he was impatient, intolerant, and complaining — scolding at everybody and finding fault with everything. But then it must also be admitted he had much reason therefor. The delays, swindles, and outrageous impositions which he and his army had to submit to, in the way of horses, wagons, provisions, and general army supplies, were almost incredible. The General's intercourse, too, with both Washington and Franklin was always pleasant and honorable to all parties ; and when the latter had raised a large number of wagons and teams for Braddock, in Pennsylvania, by means of a timely hand- bill circulated among the Dutch farmers, in which the threat was craftily held out that unless the aid was granted, the ferocious Hussar, Sir John St. Clair, would enter the province with a body of horses and. forcibly take what he wanted, Braddock expressed his thanks to him in person, and wrote to his government that it was " almost the first instance of integrity, address and ability that he had met with in all these provinces." During his march, Braddock had gotten rid of many of his foolish 44 Our Western Border. and pompous European notions. He soon discovered that America was a strange, unknown territory for him and his veterans, and that a western wilderness, with its crowded trees, dense thickets, and bridge- less streams, was a very bad place for high style or display. Thus he started by buying a tawdry and lumbering traveling chariot from Gen- eral Sharpe, of Maryland; and on the ioth of May, the army was startled by Braddock's rapid transit, on his way to Fort Cumberland, sitting grandly in his chariot, with a body of light-horse galloping on either side. Poor, mistaken old man, he was soon glad to come down to one sorry, attenuated cob, and after, to a rude litter, carried by a few faithful soldiers. Sir Peter Halket was second in command. He was a wary old Scotch- man and a high-born gentleman of the ancient regime. A nobleman by birth, he had married the Lady Amelia Stewart, daughter of the Earl of Moray, two of his sons being then with him. He was a brave, loyal, sagacious and honorable gentleman and an experienced officer, who had risen by merit alone ; and had Braddock trusted more in him and in Washington — the two who generally agreed touching all military movements — it would have saved him from defeat as well as disgrace. At the famous battle of Preston Pans — which occurred only ten years be- fore between Sir John Cope and the Highland clans and Jacobitish adher- ents of Charles Edward, the Pretender — Sir Peter, then lieutenant-colonel, had been captured and released on parole by Charles. This coming to the ears of the Duke of Cumberland, he ordered that officer to disre- gard his parole and rejoin his regiment, which Sir Peter stoutly and reso- lutely refused to do, saying that "His Royal Highness was master of his commission but not of his honor." The king approved this proper resolve of an honorable soldier and he retained his rank. It is sad to think of the fate which awaited so good a man. He and one of his sons now lie buried near the bloody field where they so bravely courted death rather than dishonor. It is not our purpose to give a detailed account of Braddock's ill-fated command, and its tedious, toilsome march, first to Cumberland, and thence to its battle-ground of disastrous defeat. Its nucleus, in the shape of the 44th regiment, Col. Sir Peter Halket, and the 48th, Col. Thomas Dunbar, had arrived from Ireland, disembarking iX Alexandria about the middle of March, 1755. Neither regiment numbered five hundred, and these were made up of Irish, Scotch and English, drafted from different commands, and a large proportion of base material. After reaching this country, these two regiments were recruited by raw, provincial levies up to an effective of seven hundred each, and, after in- numerable and vexatious delays and immense labor, were joined by Character of Gen. Braddock and his Army. 45 independent companies from New York, Virginia, Maryland, South and North Carolina. The trouble, expense and delay in getting the army supplied with wagons, provisions, horses, etc., was almost incredible and entirely disheartening, and it was not until about the 8th of June that the heterogeneous little command was ready to march from Cum- berland. The whole force was divided into two brigades under Colonels Hal- ket and Dunbar, numbering about 2,150 effectives, not counting the usual train of non-militants — women, wagoners and hangers-on. The progress of this ill-sorted command was painfully slow, five miles being considered an excellent day's march, while most frequently it did not reach half that. Bridges had to be built, roads to be cut the whole way, deep and miry marshes to be traversed, and steep and rugged hills to be surmounted. The route chosen was by no means the shortest or the easiest one. The advice of Nemacolin, the Indian guide, was too closely followed. Frequently morasses had to be waded through and savage hills to be climbed, the heavy artillery being let down by the sailors with block and tackle. The number of wagons and pack-horses was strung out in a line of over four miles in length, which was con- stantly made the object of attack, though happily by small parties. In addition to the natural difficulties of the route, were superadded such as arose from crazy wagons, wretched and inadequate food, most miser- able horses, and a general sickness and discontent among the soldiers and officers. It is little wonder, then, that this army had been ten days in reaching the Little Meadows, but twenty-four miles from Cum- berland. This fatal tardiness would never do, and reductions of bag- gage were constantly occurring. Even the officers were compelled to give up their horses to the service, Washington, Braddock's aid-de-camp, offering his best charger, and reducing his luggage to one poor half- filled portmanteau. At the Little Meadows a council of war was held, the result of which was that Washington's advice was taken, and the army was divided. It was daily more evident if Fort Duquesne was to be reached before it was reinforced and in time to allow of subsequent military operations, that a light fighting division must push forward more rapidly, and so about twelve hundred of the best and most reliable troops were sifted out, together with a select train of artillery and pack-horses for the pro- visions'. Colonel Dunbar, with all the heavy wagons, useless artillery and othe*r impedimenta, was left behind with the worst and most unre- liable troops, to make his way as best he might. Even with these aids to a more rapid progress, it was not until the 21st of June that Brad- dock entered Pennsylvania, and not until the 30th, that he crossed the 46 Our Western Border. Yough, near where Connellsville, Pa., now stands, and on the 7th of July, Turtle Creek yet remained to be passed. Had the General waited here for Dunbar's army, as was strongly urged by Sir John St. Clair, the Quartermaster-General, it would prob- ably have been the middle of August before the fort, then but a few miles off, would have been reached, and the whole army would either have starved or fallen into the hands of the enemy, as numbers would have availed little. " Dunbar, the Tardy," as he was called, had lost so many of his wretched draught horses by sickness, by starvation, and by constant stealings, that he could only move half his wagons at a time. After one day's march, the miserable and worn-out old jades were sent back to bring up the remainder, and then two days more be- fore a fresh start could be made. Now, add to all this a bad state of feeling among the troops, caused by an insufficiency of provisions ; no allowance of spirits \ nothing but water to drink, and that often bad and unwholesome, and a general disheartenment among the foreign troops. Disputes and jealousies were common, too, among the officers, and Braddock was not even on speaking terms with his two brigade commanders. Even the robust constitution of Major Washington had given away under this state of things, and he had been traveling for ten days in the rear in a covered wagon, and was but just now returning. He had exacted a promise from Braddock that on no account should a battle be fought without him being present. Turtle Creek, at the point where the army first struck it, was soon found utterly impracticable for artillery and the wagon train, without constructing a very long and costly bridge, and it was decided to aban- don this line altogether, turn sharp about and make for the Mononga- ghela, where the Indian guides said there were two excellent fords. The night of July 8th was passed about two miles from the Mononga- hela. It had been decided that what was known as the river " Narrows" , — it being impracticable for artillery and affording for several miles ad- mirable facilities for hostile ambush and attack — should be avoided by crossing the Monongahela at the first ford, and recrossing it at the sec- ond ford a few miles below. By eight o'clock on the memorable 9th of July the first passage of the river was made at a point opposite Crooked Kim, and even to this day observable by a deep scar in the banks where they were graded down to make a road for the artillery. The army now found itself on a broad bottom, covered with a fine growth of maple, walnut and sycamore, and moved steadily forward in the road cut for them. By eleven o'clock the second ford was reached, nearly opposite the mouth of Turtle Creek, and but a quarter of a mile below what is known now as the " Second Dam." The Disastrous Battle of Braddocks Fields. 47 Here the bottom begins to narrow until it runs into the hills very near the margin of the river. On this grassy savanna, denuded of trees, Braddock, not doubting that the enemy from the opposite bluff were anxiously watching his every motion, resolved to impress them with the size and character of his command. Accordingly, while the banks were being graded down, on that as well as the other side, to al- low of the passage of the artillery, baggage wagons, cattle, etc., the troops were ordered to appear as for dress-parade. Now the astonished hiils re-echo with the loud beat of drums and the swell of martial music. Every man was attired in his cleanest apparel. The flags and colors were unfurled, and the joyful and well-drilled troops, glittering in scar- let and gold, were rapidly marched and manoeuvred and put through all their movements, which they executed with the precision of a piece of machinery. This plateau, where, for over an hour, all this showy parade was go- ing on, was in full and uninterrupted view from the subsequent battle- held. The officers and soldiers viewed it with undisguised pride and delight. But one belief prevailed — the speedy occupation of the fort. No wonder that Washington, in after life, declared it to be the most beautiful and inspiring spectacle he had ever witnessed. All was now ready and after a brief repast the army had safely passed the river and reformed about one o'clock in a thick walnut grove, several hundred yards below the mouth of Turtle Creek, and hard by Frazier's cabin. The Disastrous Battle of Braddocks Fields. (Taken from the Historical Novel of " Old Fort Duquesne.") The death-shot hissing from afar; The shosk, the shout, the groan of war, Reverberate along that vale, More suited to the shepherd's tale. — Byron's Giaour, One effort — one — to break the circling host ; They form — unite — charge — waver — all is lost I Within a narrow ring compressed, beset, Hopeless, not heartless, they strive and struggle yet. Oh ! now they fight in firmest file no more ; Hemmed in— cut off— cleft down and trampled o'er. — Byron's Corsair We quote from " Old Fort Duquesne," the subjoined account of the battle of "Braddocks Fields," not alone because unusual pains have been used to make it full and reliable, but because the dialogue form in which it is cast, serves to liven it up and break the monotony. Cap- tain Jack, the Scout, and Scarrooyaddy, the Oneida Chief, are both his- torical characters. We quote : — It was now past one o'clock of a sultry afternoon. The rear guard had not entirely crossed the river, before the van had been pushed for- 48 Our Western Border. ward towards the hills; Gage, with his three hundred videttes, engi- neers, light-horse and pioneers in front, followed at a little interval by Sir John St. Clair's working party, with its two brass six-pounders, and its tumbrels and tool carts. Their business it was to cut and prepara the road marked out for them by the engineers. The march was to continue until three, and then the last bivouac before resting in Foi t Duquesne, or, at least, before encamping down about it. On either flank of the advance were thrown out squads of videttes, to guard against surprise. The distant sound of the ringing axe, and the crash of falling trees, could be distinctly heard as the pioneers rapidly advanced — first over the broad and gently-rising river bottom, and then up the slope which led to another gradually-ascending plain, which, in its turn, rested against a line of bold, wooded hills. This second alluvial slope was more heavily timbered than the flat below, while the undergrowth of vine, thicket, and tall wood grass became at every step more abundant and luxuriant. Adown this second sloping plain — although at that time, and not until long after known to or even suspected by the British — ran several ravines nearly at right angles to the brow of the hill which the advance had just surmounted. From one on the left trickled a little stream, which as it debouched into the first bottom, lost all distinctive channel, and was so diffused as to cause a sort of marsh. It was to avoid the treacherous footing of this miry bog, and to pass the head of the ravine which gave it birth, that the army was mounting so far towards the hill-sides. The ravine on the extreme right, which sprang from the hills and traversed the whole second plain, was both broad and deep, its sides and bottom thickly covered with huge trees, and having an unusually rampant growth of vines and brambles, and sufficiently ample to conceal an army of ten thousand men. About two hundred yards from the line of hill and the same distance from the broad ravine just mentioned, commences, right in the middle of the plain, and without any apparent raison d'etre, a most singular ditch, with a depth and breadth of a few feet at its head, but increas- ing soon to ten or twelve, and at that time overhung and completely concealed by a thick growth of vines and bushes; of grasses and trailers and the wild Indian plum. Even to this day it can scarcely be perceived, or, at least, its full capacity cannot be fully appreciated, until one is right upon and then in it. It is a most peculiar ditch, and could not be better adapted, either for attack or defence, were engineers to devise and fashion it. It could easily conceal a thousand men. The main place of action was on the densely-wooded tract between The Disastrous Battle of Braddocks Fields. 49 these two ravines, with its fallen trunks, its coverts and thickets of vines and brush and grass. The course of the twelve-foot-wide road cut through these leafy coverts, was not parallel with either, but diagonal and turning the head of the last-described ravine at an angle of about forty-five degrees, the whole face and flanks of the passing army being exposed to a long line of the enemy's fire at an average distance of sixty or seventy yards. This then was the spot so carefully reconnoitred and so admirably chosen by the six French officers and Indian chiefs, whose departure from the fort we described in our last. Here was the slaughter-pen they had so adroitly marked out for their foes. When, or if, beaten b> their adversaries at the river crossing, it was to this refuge they would retire, and here would they prepare their ambush. Not a man or offi- cer of the British army ever dreamed of these ravines, and never saw them during the three hours of combat, and it was only long after the disastrous action, when reason resumed its sway, and the beaten, driven mob of fugitives considered how pitilessly they were pelted and mown down by a terrible but unseen feu d'enfer, that they concluded their wily foe must have fired from hidden ravines. Pass over these quiet, peaceful "fields" now, as we have but lately done, part of them in grass and part staked out and soon to be occupied by the country seats of Pittsburgh business men, and then imagine them covered with a sombre and luxuriant forest, the ravines choked with vines and brush and undergrowth, and the long rows of deadly rifles resting on their edges and deliberately sighted by hundreds of naked savages, and then see the narrow road choked up with an unsheltered crowd of soldiers and mounted officers, and Braddock's defeat is easily accounted for. Had the French hunted for days, or had their engi- neers the privilege of selecting a ground for successful combat and arranging artificial ditches for attack and concealment, they could not have found or prepared any place better fitted for a dreadful and suc- cessful assault, or one which could so easily have protected the assail- ants. As Braddock and his aide Washington — still weak and shattered from his fever and unable to sit on his horse without a pillow — were stand- ing on the river's bluff, trying to bring order out of confusion, and to separate the noisy mob of soldiers, wagoners, artillery and cattle, the clear ring of the distant axe was suddenly exchanged for the rapid and continuous discharge of firearms. The crack of rifle, followed by the roll of musketry, appeared to be incessant. " My God, Major ! " cried Braddock, as he leaped to his horse, whose bridle his servant Bishop was holding near him, " the advance is 4 60 Our Western Border. attacked, and sharply, too ! What can it mean ? Mount on the in stant, and bring me back a report of what's going on ! Tell St. Clair and Gage to throw well out their flankers ! and urge Burton, as you pass, to hurry forward with the vanguard, while I get the artillery in motion. Here ! you infernal scoundrels of wagoners and cattle-drivers, get you out of the road with your rubbish into the woods on either side, and let the troops and guns press on ! Quick step ! Don't dally!" Washington delayed not an instant, but springing upon his powerful roan, spurred along under the trees and by the side of the road now choked up with artillery and soldiers, all pressing forward with utmost speed and excitement. He soon reached the first slope ; a few strides and his horse was over its brow and on the plain beyond. The firing was now straight ahead of him. Officers and men stood huddled in groups in the road ; some few had taken to the trees on either side. The two brass pieces had just been unlimbered and the cannoneers were pre- paring to apply the match. The attack had evidently been sudden and unexpected, and Washington now saw Gage's advance doubled back upon St. Clair's working party, and for a brief space all was confusion. Nothing could be seen in front but the flashes of the enemy's guns and the shadowy forms here and there of French and Indians as they glided from tree to tree ; nothing heard but the crack of rifles, the noise of muskets, the piercing yells and whoops of savages, who seemed to fill the woods and to be working around in a semicircle. ''Ho! Sir John," exclaimed Washington, as St. Clair, foaming with rage and mad with excitement, approached to form and urge on the men. "What's all this? The General bids you halt where you are ; throw your flankers well out, and hold your own — if hotly pressed — until Bur- ton comes up. What's the nature of the attack?" "Fierce as furnace fire and hot as d n," answered the fiery Sir John. " Harry Gordon was in the very front marking out the road when, upon hearing a rushing noise ahead and looking through the trees, he saw a pack of French and Indians on the run, a gaily-dressed officer, with a silver gorget on his bosom, leading the way with long kangaroo leaps. Soon as they got within musket shot, the cursed Frencher stopped short in his tracks, and waving his plumed hat above his head and then stretching his arms to either side, his pack of red devils scattered to right and left, crouched down and slunk away behind trees, trunks, and what-not, until, by heavens, they had completely vanished — not a painted head or hide of one of them to be seen — the skulking cowards ! The first we knew, a pitiless hail of bullets rained upon us, amid the most horrible screeches and yells and infernal noises The Disasirous Battle of Braddocks Fields. 51 sure ever mortal heard. I'm blessed, Major, if I'm used to this kind of fighting — don't know what to make of it. Our flankers have all run in, and the carpenters, or what's left of them, are huddled down the road like so many sheep worried by wolves, and the troops are fairly appalled by these screeching demons. For God's sake, hurry old Brad- dock up ! tell him we've got the whole French-Indian army in our front, and will have to fight our way to the fort step by step." Washington, after a few more brief, rapid questions, took in the whole situation and turned his horse's head. He had gone but a few steps when he saw Jack and the Half King a few yards on one side of the road, each peering from behind his tree and trying to catch sight ol something to shoot at. " Halloo ! Jack and Scarrooyaddy. You there, my braves? Where are the other Indians ? They must scatter in the woods and try and find out where those devils are hiding and what's their force. I'll have Braddock here in a flash." Just then a crack was heard and a bullet whizzed by, going through and through the lappel of Washington's coat. " Aha ! Major," cried Jack, quick as thought, as he raised and fired his rifle, " that's just the chance I've been waiting for. I've watched that skulking Shawnee now for over a minute. I knew he wouldn't let you pass without a shot. That's their game, the cunning varmints. Pick off the mounted leaders, and the rest comes, of course. Don't stay to see where I hit him, Major. Old * Black Rifle ' is certain as death. Hurry up the troops ! we'll need 'em all, for the savages are in full feather in front ; if there's one, there's a thousand, twisting and creeping and gliding about among those trunks. Halloo ! there's Yaddy's rifle. Hit him again, by Jupiter ! and a Frencher, too ! No bark without its bite is the plan we're acting on." Washington had not far to go. Braddock, finding the uproar not only continuing but even increasing in front, had raged through the whole army like mad, and could not wait for his aid's report. Order- ing Burton to detach eight hundred men and hurry forward with all possible speed, he left Sir Peter Halket in the rear with full four hun- dred to protect the baggage. He then swore and stormed along the whole artillery line, and pushed the guns forward as fast as possible. Washington met the General, his eyes fairly aflame and with spurs buried deep into his horse's flanks, right on the brow of the hill. Gage's cannon at that moment had just filled the woods with their resounding roar, which was followed with cheer after cheer from the British, who were standing in a confused crowd in the middle and on the sides of the road, loading and firing as fast as they could. 52 Our Western Border. The terrible, leaden hail, which had been so steadily raining on the English and shattering their columns, now slackened for a while. The British then advanced on the French in front, pouring in a hot fire, though very few of the enemy could be seen. As they drew near, another staggering discharge met them, appearing to come, as it were, right out of the ground. The British rallied again, and opened a dreadful storm of grape and musketry, sweeping away everything living before them, but the grievous misfortune was, that about the only living things were the trees of the woods. Beaujeu, the chief leader of the foe, and several others, were seen to fall, while the Indians, unaccustomed to the appall- ing roar of artillery and the loud huzzas of the soldiery, appeared to waver, and for the moment gave way. A well-pushed bayonet charge just then would have put them to remediless flight. Observing, how- ever, that the French and Canadians still held their ground in the direct front ; much exasperated by the fall of their loved Beaujeu, and urged on to revenge by Dumas, Langlade and de Lignery, they took fresh heart, and returned to their trees and ravines, through and along which they extended more and more. It was just at this critical moment that Braddock's horse leaped into the road, and, struck instantly by a bullet in front, fell on the very leap, throwing the General violently to the ground. The grim and infuriated old warrior staggered to his feet, sword in hand, and glared around like a lioness robbed of her whelps. His eyes fairly shot flames, and his face grew livid with rage as he saw his carefully-drilled veterans standing in groups and without order, all appearing to fire at random, while many were shooting into the trees above them, as if their foes were birds in the branches. To increase his disgustful rage, just at this moment Gage's advance gave way entirely. The unseen enemy had worked themselves along the ravines on both flanks, and, from behind the dense undergrowth and tall grass which fringed them, poured in a most galling fire, coolly and securely picking off officer after officer. Colonel Burton's command had just come upon the ground, and were forming, as well as could be under such a murderous hail of lead and in such a narrow road, when crowding down upon them came Gage's and St. Clair's shattered columns trying to get into their rear, and mixing the two regiments in inextricable confusion. Then it was that Braddock stormed around with a rage and an indig- nation which was almost sublime from its intensity. Turning sharply on Gage : " How's this, craven sir ! would ye so basely dishonor your king and the duke ? God's wrath ! is this the way you've been taught to The Disastrous Battle of Braddocks Fields. 53 fight ! By the Eternal, but I'll break your disgraced sword where you sit in saddle ! Curses on you all for a set of white-liveied cowards ! You look more like a flock of silly sheep set on by hounds than drilled soldiers. For shame ! for shame ! Fall in ranks, every mother's son of you, and come out from behind those trees ! By the great God above us, men, but I'll cut down with my sword the first soldier, British or American, who dare skulk behind a cover ! Out with you, cowards !" and suiting the action to the word, Braddock leaped to the road side and actually hit with the flat of his sword several whom he found behind the trees, while others he pushed into the road. "General," sullenly expostulated Gage, "these insults are unde- served. We can't fight a deadly foe who surrounds us on three sides but whom we can't see. The officers are falling like leaves all about you. The men are plainly panic-stricken. If allowed to get behind whatever cover offers, they can pick up heart and reform when the enemy is found. If not, we'll all be killed, officers and men." " Killed !" hoarsely roared Braddock, while mounting his second Horse. "And why not? Better die with naked front to the foe than blink and skulk like hares in their ' forms.' Get behind trees ! Oh, that ever I'd live to hear a British officer and a nobleman's son, too, give voice to such dastard words ! Officers, I command you to sepa- rate yon frightened mob ! Advance the regimental colors ! Set up rallying points ! Tell the men off into platoons, and hunt up the enemy in that way ! Major Washington, bid the rest of the artillery advance and open with grape !" The word had scarce left his lips before his second horse was laid low with a bullet, and Braddock was again on his feet in the road, which did not go far to improve his temper. Here Washington ven- tured to observe, quietly and in low tones : " General, since the ene- my's evidently in great strength ahead and on each flank, would it not be well to find out exactly where he is, and how he manages to so hide himself? If we could retire the troops a little out of fire, beat up these woods with the bayonet, and reform — " " Retire ! retire out of fire ! and before a d — d dastardly foe who dare not uncover himself !" shouted Braddock. "Major Washington, you are my aid-de-camp to carry orders, not to give them ! Retire is a round, well-picked word ! It may suit your American militia, but, sir, it is a disgraceful word for an officer holding His Majesty's com- mission, either to speak or to hear ! It was by retiring, as you well call it, that Forts Duquesne and Necessity were given up by you last year to the French 1 Dam^erland and Tennessee rivers. Following the latter stream to the Ohio, his companions concluded to go to explore the Illinois country, but Smith determined to go east, through the vast wilderness, to Carolina. Taking only a little powder, he started off on his long and adventurous journey, accompanied only by the mulatto lad. After about eight days of wilderness tramping, Smith received a painful cane stab in the foot ; his leg commenced to swell, and finally became so intolerably painful that he had to perform a surgical opera- tion in order to draw the huge splinter from his foot. He had nothing but a knife, a moccasin awl and a pair of bullet-moulds. But these, with the aid of the faithful darkey, proved efficient, but they were com- pelled to lie by here many, many weeks. He made the darkey hunt up Indian fomentations and poultices, using wood mosses instead cf rags, and wrapping the whole around with elm-bark. A shelter was made with branches covered over with cane-tops, about a hundred yards distant from a regular buffalo trace, and with the aid of a Psalm Book and Watts upon Prayer, the two hermits got along very com- fortably, Smith even composing poetry. Some weeks after, Smith was able to travel slowly, and the two moved on, arriving in Carolina in October. He had, as he quaintly writes, "been now eleven months in the wilderness, and during this time I neither saw bread, money, women nor spirituous liquors, and three months of which I saw none of the human species except Jamie. When I came into the settlement, my clothes were almost worn out, and the boy had nothing on him that ever was spun — buckskin leggings, moc- casins and breech-clout, a bear skin, dressed with the hair on, and a rac- coon-skin cap. I was strictly examined by the inhabitants. I told them the truth, and where I came from, &c, but my story appeared so strange to them that they didn't believe me, asserting they had never heard of any one coming through the mountains from the mouth of the Ten- nessee, and if any undertook such a journey, surely no man would lend him his slave. On suspicion, they therefore took me into custody, and set a guard over me." Meeting soon with an old acquaintance who vouched for him, poor Takes a British Fort. 107 Smith was liberated, and, with an old beaver hat and blanket, buckskin leggins, moccasins, and a new shirt, which his pitying friend gave him, he marched on with Jamie, clad in his rough bear skin, and the twain presenting such a wild and uncouth spectacle, that Smith avers the dogs would come out and bark at them, and the settlers frequently stopped them on suspicion. He soon after obtained good clothes and a horse, and then, adds he, "no man ever asked me for a pass; there- fore, I concluded that a horse thief, or even a robber, might pass with- out interruption provided he was only well dressed, whereas the shabby villain would be immediately detected." In the Fall of 1767, Smith reached home, his wife and friends having again given him up as dead, since they had heard he was killed by In- dians, and his horse brought into one of the Cherokee towns. In 1769, he and his "Indian boys" again commenced his war on the Indian- traders, for which some of his companions were arrested and lodged in Bed- ford jail — then, of course, a British post. Smith did not approve of the conduct of some of those who were arrested, but he could not bear to think of them chafing in irons, and so he boldly resolved to attempt a grand rescue. Collecting eighteen of his "black boys," he openly marched, with the avowed design of taking Fort Bedford, but employ- ed a friend to go before as a spy. The next day they encamped near the crossings of the Juniata, about fourteen miles from the fort, and commenced erecting tents, as though intending to stay all night. None but Smith knew differently. At eleven at night, however, he roused his band and marched rapidly on towards the fort. Meeting his spy, he was told that the commandant had put thirty men on guard, and ridi- culed the very idea of such a small rabble taking the fort. Smith, finding the gate shut, moved his men quietly up under the Juniata's banks, where they lay concealed about a hundred yards from the fort gate. Soon as he found the gates open in the morning, the arms standing stacked, and the guards taking their morning dram, he, with his trusty followers, made a sudden rush inside the gate and took possession of the arms. They then raised a yell, hurriedly proceeded to the guard-house, found a blacksmith to remove the irons off the prisoners, and taking them all with them, rapidly left the place. " This, ] believe," modestly adds Smith, "was the first British fort in America that was taken by what they called ' American rebels.' " Some time after, while Smith was quietly riding from Bedford, en route to visit his lands located on the Yough, he was overtaken by some travelers on horseback who asked his name, and on his telling it, they pulled out their pistols and threatened to kill him if he didn't surrender himself as prisoner. But Smith was not that kind of a man. He 1 08 Our Western Border. Stepped back, upped with his rifle, and upon one of the party snapping a pistol at him, let drive, dropping his enemy to the earth. The party, however, now made a rush on him, seized him, put him in Bedford guard-house, and held an inquest, bringing in Smith guilty of murder. As they were afraid to keep him at Bedford for fear of a rescue, he was sent privately to Carlisle, where he was heavily ironed and securely guarded. Smith's arrest, it may well be supposed, created a terrible pother in the country round about. Hearing that a number of the old " black boys " were coming to tear down the jail, he told the sheriff he would not be rescued, but would stand his trial, and wrote a letter asking his old companions to keep off. They, hearing he was in irons, however, would come on. Smith asked the sheriff to take off his irons and he would make them a speech. This he did, begging them as the greatest favor his friends could do for him, to keep away and let him stand trial. That he was innocent and would surely be released. They retired but soon after met another force of three hundred rescuers, when the whole party returned to Carlisle and asserted that as he could never get a fair trial, they were resolved to rescue him. These also were per- suaded to move off without attempting any violence. Smith remained in prison four months, and when the Supreme Court sat, had his trial, the upshot of which was a verdict of " not guilty." Smith now quieted down and became a substantial citizen. In 1 774, an- other Indian war commenced, in which Smith acted as Captain. At the outbreak of the Revolution, he was elected a member of the State Assembly, and afterwards headed his old Indian fighters and went on a scouting expedition against the British in Jersey. Preceding Washing- ton, they waylaid the road at Rocky Hill, and with only thirty-six men attacked and defeated a force of two hundred. They afterwards made captive a lot of Hessians. Smith was soon seized with camp fever and lay at Burlington a long time. He then tried to get permission to raise a battalion of riflemen, to be dressed as Indians and to act as scouts, but Washington did not favor the idea, but offered him a majorship, which Smith, wishing to be with his own boys, declined. In 1778, Smith secured a Colonel's commission, and was diligently and constantly employed protecting our frontier against British Indians. Soon after he commanded four hundred riflemen on a successful expe- dition against the French Creek Indians, and in 1788 he migrated West md settled in Bourbon county, Kentucky, representing his district in Assembly down to the present century. Captain -Jack, the Wild Hunter of the Juniata. 109 CAPTAIN JACK, "THE WILD HUNTER OF THE JUNIATA/' About this period there flourished along the Pennsylvania border — at that time scarce extending much beyond the Susquehanna — a notable character by the name of Captain Jack, who was almost as much famed as his Indian namesake of Modoc notoriety has lately become. Al- though there is much of legend and mystery connected about the Juni- ata-valley Jack, this much is certain, that there was a bold hunter and "Indian-killer," known all along the Pennsylvania border, from the up- per Susquehanna down to the Potomac, by that name. In Hazard's Register there is frequent mention of him. Colonel Armstrong, in his reports of his expedition against Captain Jacobs of the Delaware vil- lage of Kittanning, calls him — on account of his swarthy visage — "The Half-Indian." His monument can be now seen at Chambersburg, with the following inscription: "Colonel Patrick Jack, an officer of the Colonial and Revolutionary wars — died January 25th, 1821, aged nine- ty-one years." Colonel George Croghan, who, while Braddock was preparing for his march, was engaged in beating up a number of Indians, scouts, etc., to serve as guides, distinctly states that Captain Jack was at the head of a body of bold hunter-rangers, skilled in woodcraft, expert in Indian fighting, clad, like their leader, in Indian attire, and offered them to Braddock, provided they were allowed to dress, march and fight as they pleased, and not to be subject to the strict regulations of a soldier's camp. "They are well armed," said Croghan, "and are equally re- gardless of heat or cold. They require no shelter for the night, and ask no pay /" This, of course, could not be permitted by such a strict and self-reliant martinet as Braddock, and the Rangers were suffered to depart. It is idle now to speculate what might have been the result of the British Expedition had these scouts, and a larger body of fighting Indians been allowed to accompany, or rather precede Braddock's army. Judging, however, from the late invaluable services of the Warm Spring Indians in tracking the Modocs to their lairs, beating up their fastnesses in the lava-beds, and bringing them to bay in such manner that nothing was left but surrender, it is certainly safe to assume that these Pennsyl- vania Rangers and Indians would have performed the same offices for Braddock, and rendered wholly impossible the disastrous defeat which we have taken such pains to describe. Captain Jack's early history is shrouded in mystery, but it is the cur- rent tradition in middle Pennsylvania that he was a frontier settler, and 110 Our Western Border. that returning one evening from a long day's chase, he found his cabin a heap of smouldering ruins, and the blackened corpses of his murdered family scattered around. From that time he became a rancorous Indian hater and slayer. In '53 he held a sort of roving commission from Governor Hamilton — his home being in the Juniata valley — going un- der the names of "The Black Rifle," "The Black Hunter," and "The Wild Hunter of the Juniata." It is thought by some that "Jack's Mountain," in Pennsylvania, was called after him; but this, we think, is a mistake ; it, as well as "Jack's Narrows," having taken their name from the fact — which caused a great deal of excitement at the time — of the atrocious murder, in 1744, of a noted Indian trader named Jack Armstrong, together with his two servants, Smith and Woodward, by a Delaware Chief called Musemeelin. In Jones' "Juniata Valley," we find a lengthy account of Captain Jack. He makes him a hunter living on the Juniata, near a beautiful spring, having a mystery about him which no one ever succeeded in fathoming. He is described by Jones as a man of Herculean propor- tions, with an extremely swarthy complexion, and as a relentless Indian tracker and killer. The settlers about Aughwick (now Shirleysburg, Huntingdon county, Pa.,) as well as those in Path Valley and along the Juniata, "frequently found dead savages, some in a state of partial decay, and others with their flesh stripped by the bald eagles, on the spot where Jack's rifle had laid them low." "On one occasion," writes Jones, "Captain Jack had concealed himself in the woods by the side of the 'Aughwick Path,' where he lay in wait for a stray Indian. Pres- ently a painted warrior, with a red feather waving from his head, and his body bedizened with gew-gaws recently purchased from a trader, came down the 'path.' A crack from Captain Jack's rifle, and the savage bounded into the air and fell dead without a groan. It appears that three others were in company — but had tarried at a spring — who, on hearing the discharge of a rifle, under the impression that their com- panion had shot a bear, gave a loud 'whoop.' Captain Jack imme- diately loaded, and when the Indians came up to the dead body, Jack again shot and killed a second one. The Indians then rushed into the thicket, and one of them getting a glimpse of Jack, shot at him, but missed. The 'Wild Hunter,' seeing that the chances were desperate, jumped out and engaged in a hand-to-hand encounter — the fourth savage being only armed with a tomahawk. He soon dispatched the third one by beating his brains out with a rifle ; but the fourth one, an athletic fellow, grappled, and a long and bloody fight with knives followed, and only ceased when both were exhausted by loss of blood. The Indian managed to get away, and left the ' Black Hunter ' the victor of the Captain Jack, the Wild Hunter of the Juniata. Ill field. Weak and faint as Jack was, he scalped the three savages, and managed to work his way to the settlement, where his wounds — consist- ing of eight or ten stabs — were dressed." "It is said," continues Jones, "that one night the family of an Irish- man named Moore, residing in Aughwick, were suddenly awakened by the report of a gun. On opening the door, they found a dead Indian lying upon the very threshold. By the feeble light which shone through the door, they discovered the dim outline of the 'Wild Hunter,' who merely said: 'I have saved your lives,' and then plunged into the dark ravine and disappeared. With an eye like the eagle, an aim that was unerring, daring intrepidity, and a constitution that could brave the heat of Summer as well as the frosts of Winter, he roamed the valley like an uncaged tiger, the most formidable foe that ever crossed the red- man's path. Of the final end of Captain Jack," concludes Jones, "we have nothing definite. One account says he went west, another that he died in 1772. It is said that his bones rest near the spring at the base of the mountain bearing his name, and this we are inclined to credit. The early settlers of the neighborhood believed that Captain Jack came down from the mountain every night at twelve o'clock to slake his thirst at his favorite spring; and half a century ago we might readily have produced the affidavits of twenty respectable men who had seen the 'Black Hunter' in the spirit, roaming over the land that was his in the flesh. The towering mountain, a hundred miles in length, bearing his game, will stand as an indestructible monument to bis memory*" Chapter II THE CONSPIRACY OF PONTIAC. For he was of unblenching eye, Honored in youth, revered in age ; Of princely port and bearing high, And brave and eloquent and sage. Ah, scorn not that a tawny skin Wrapped his strong limbs and ample breast ; A noble soul was pent within As paler Saxon e'er possessed. Oft hath he gazed from yonder height, When pausing 'mid the chase alone, On the fair realms beneath his sight, And proudly called them all his own. — % H. Bryattt. Upon the evacuation of Fort Duquesne, most of Forbes* army re crossed the mountains, he himself being carried in a litter the whole way, and dying shortly after at Philadelphia. As the possession of the Forks of the Ohio was of immense importance to the whole country, it was determined to hold them, and for the present to erect a small stock- ade to be occupied by one hundred men, under Colonel Hugh Mercer — afterwards one of the most popular Generals of the Revolution and killed at the battle of Princeton. In September, 1759, was commenced the formidable foitification called Fort Pitt, which was completed the next year, having cost the British government sixty thousand pounds. With Fort Duquesne's fall, all direct contest between the French and British ceased in the West. Canada was thenceforth the only scene of operations, though garrisons for awhile remained in the forts on French Creek. In '59 Ticonderoga, Crown Point, Niagara, and at length Quebec — assaulted by the famous Wolfe from the "Plains of Abra- ham " — yielded to the British, and in the Fall of '60, Montreal, De- troit, and all Canada were surrendered by Vaudreuil, the French Gov- ernor. The long war was at length over ; but it still remained to take posses- sion of the frontier French posts, and it was while Major Rogers, cap- tain of the far-famed American rangers, (half hunters, half woodsmen,) and a most gallant and skillful partisan officer, was marching to the front, that we first hear of the great and immortal Pontiac, the most The Conspiracy of Pontiac. 113 noble and powerful Indian Chief that has ever appeared on the pageg of American history. Rogers had left Montreal with two hundred of his rangers in fifteen whale-boats. Skirting along the northern shore of Ontario, they reached Fort Niagara on the ist of October. Carrying their frail barks over the portage, they launched them once more on Lake Erie, and proceeded to the post at Presqu' Isle, (now Erie, Pa.,) and thence along its southern shore. Arriving at the mouth of the Chogage, the farthest point west that any body of troops under the British flag had ever penetrated, Rogers encamped in the neighboring forest. They had scarce landed before a number of chiefs appeared before their startled eyes, who stated they were an embassy from Pontiac, the great Lord of all that region, who would soon pay them a visit, and that the " pale-faces " must proceed no further. Shortly after, Pontiac himself, majestic in appearance and attended by a number of his chiefs, made his appearance, and haughtily de- manded of Rogers what his warriors were doing in that country, and how he dared enter it without his permission. The Major was too prudent to take offence at this arrogant style of address, but quietly answered that the French were defeated : that all Canada had surrendered, and that he had been ordered to take possession of Fort Detroit, and was now on his way thither. The proud chiet only deigned to reply, "I shall stand in the path you are walking until morning," as much as to say, Proceed no farther without permission. The next morning Pontiac reappeared, offered the pipe of peace, and said he was willing to live at peace with the English so long as they treated him with deference — not only this, but he dispatched messen- gers to the various Indian towns in front of Rogers, informing them that the Englishman had his authority to march through the country, and he employed a hundred of his warriors to drive the cattle which had been sent from Fort Pitt for the use of the troops. He kept near Rogers until his arrival at Detroit, and was the means of preventing a hostile Indian attack at the mouth of Detroit river. Hitherto Pontiac had been in word and deed the firm ally of the French, but he was shrewd, subtle and ambitious, and was too wise and crafty to press a failing cause. By making friends with the English, he hoped to ad- vance his own ambitious projects and increase his influence over the north-western tribes. He confidently expected, likewise, that the new- comers would treat him and his authority with the same studied respect that the French had done. In all this he was doomed to a speedy and a mortifying disappointment. His tolerance, therefore, was soon suc- ceeded by jealousy, which was easily, on opportunity, converted into rage and then revenge. 8 114 Our Western Border. Pontiac at this time was principal Chief of the Ottawas, and was about fifty years of age. His powerful tribe had for some time been united with the Ojibwas and Pottawattamies, a*d he was theit common head, exercising over them almost despotic authority and his power extending among all the surrounding nations. He was brave, shrewdy subtle and eloquent, and was a perfect master of all those arts by which the American savage is not only won, but retained. He had led his tribe, a few years before, at the bloody battle of Braddocks Fields. A short time previous he had saved the Detroit garrison from an attack from surrounding tribes. During the French war he had fought on the side of France, and had received especial marks of esteem from the Marquis de Montcalm. When Rogers appeared with his whale-boats before Detroit, inform- ing its French commandant that Canada had surrendered, and that he bore an order from Vaudreuil for the quiet evacuation of Detroit, he could not and would not believe it. The rangers landed on the opposite bank and pitched their tents upon a meadow. Two officers went across the stream to take possession. The authority from Vaudreuil was shown, and could not be disputed. In obedience thereto, the French garrison defiled upon the plain and grounded their arms. The fleur de Lis was lowered on the flag-staff, and the Cross of St. George took its place, while several hundred Indian warriors, late the active allies of France, looked on with wonder at the scene. They could not under- stand why so many men should humble themselves without a blow be- fore those few impudent strangers. When it was all explained they were equally amazed at the forbearance of the conquerors in not kill- ing their vanquished enemies on the spot. The forts of Miami, Ona- tanon and Machillimackinac soon after followed suit — still later the three remoter posts of St. Marie, Green Bay and St. Joseph. First Mutterings of the Awful Storm — Pontiac's Subtlety. Speedily, however, were heard the sullen mutterings of an awful storm. A deep-rooted hatred against the English soon grew vip. They knew not like the French how to conciliate the Indians. They were stingy and niggardly with their gifts; they treated the Indian visitors at the forts with disdain and contempt, sometimes with personal rudeness and indignities ; the French used to humor their ways and conform to their customs, marrying with them, dressing and living like them, and contributing liberally to all their amusements and native tastes. From the English they got little but harsh words or contemptuous blows. This hated nation, too, were steadily advancing, occupying all their best Pontiac's Subtlety. 115 lands and the British fur-traders were cheating, rum-selling ruffians of the most degraded stamp, who debauched their women, encroached on their best trapping grounds and swindled them out of their furs with systematic villainy. Add to all this the fact that the French Cana- dians, who hoped that the hated British rule would be temporary, did all they possibly could to foment bad blood and to spread all manner of wicked reports and deceptions, and it is no marvel that the whole red race was ripe for revolt and conspiracy. In the language of a great Chippewa orator, the French had lived in the same lodge with them ; they had sent them missionaries ; had invited them to grand councils ; had overwhelmed them with frequent and valuable presents, and had treated them as brothers. The English, however, had neglected all those acts of kindness and arts of courtesy and policy which had made the French so agreeable. The conduct of the French had never given rise to suspicion. That of the English had never given rest to it. And now, too, a prophet — answering to Tecumseh's brother many years afterwards — arose conveniently among the Delawares to give as it were the sanction of the Great Spirit to all this discontent. He fairly hated the English and by all the arts known to the native dreamer and soothsayer, he went to and fro stirring up suspicion and discord. He dreamed dreams and saw visions, and all to the same purpose. The English had come to take away the beautiful country given them by the Great Spirit and they must be cut off or driven off. Pontiac, actuated by revenge, ambition and patriotism, was really at the bottom of all this trouble. His sagacious, far-seeing mind, fore- cast the future and saw plainly that now, if ever, was the time to check the British advance. He sent out his ambassadors far and near. Bear- ing with them the war belt of wampum and the tomahawk stained in token of war, they roamed over all the country and called secret coun- cils of all the tribes, advancing as far east as the Delaware and Shaw- nees of the Allegheny ; the Cherokees and Catawbas of the south, and the Illinois and Muscatines of the west ; and, first, a grand council of all the neighboring tribes, of which Pontiac was the supreme head and inspiration, was convened at the river Aux Ecorces. Here Pontiac exerted all those subtle arts for which he was so distinguished. With a profound knowledge of the savage character, and especially aware of the great power of superstition on their minds, he related, among other things, a dream in which the Great Spirit had secretly dis- closed to the Delaware prophet aforesaid, exactly what his red children must do. They were to abstain from the pale-faces' "fire-water;" to abandon all their manufactures ; resume their bows and arrows, fire-arms and the skins of animals for clothing, "and why," the orator conclu- 116 Our Western Border. ded, " Why, said the Great Spirit to the Delaware prophet, do yon suffer these vile dogs in red clothing to enter your country and take the land I have given to you alone ? Arise ! Drive them from it 1 Drivt them! When you are in distress /will help you ! " This speech was received with cries of vengeance. The scheme was fully debated and concluded. It was resolved that the work of extir- pation should be commenced on the same day east and west ; north and south. That all should be kept secret as the grave and that in all cases, according to the universal Indian rule, resort should first be had to craft and artifice. Should they fail, then, open war. With the subtle dissimulation of their race, the design was carefully concealed until all the tribes far and near should be ready to act in con- cert. Until that day arrived, the warriors still lounged about the forts, with calm, stony, imperturbable faces, begging as usual for tobacco and whiskey. Now and then some trader, coming in from Indian villages, would bring strange reports of mischief being on foot, or some swag- gering half-breed would be heard boasting in his cups that he would now have abundance of hair-fringe for his hunting frock, but still there was no general alarm. Early in March, indeed, the plot was nearly dis- covered. Ensign Holmes, commanding at Fort Miami, was told by a friendly Indian, that the warriors of a neighboring friendly village had received a war belt and a peremptory command to destroy him and his garrison, which they were preparing to do. On being charged with this design, the wily savages did as they had often done before, and did do afterwards — they confessed the fault with much apparent humility, and blamed a far-distant tribe. Holmes wrote to Major Gladwyn, who was then the British commander of Detroit, who, in turn, informed General Amherst — but, also, that he thought the affair would soon blow over, and that, in the neighborhood of his own fort, the savages were perfectly tranquil, and yet, within cannon shot of this brave but deluded officer, dwelt and plotted the great Pontiac himself. Well, the dread day agreed upon arrived at last, and the result was nine British forts captured, and in every case by artifice. Some of the garrisons were completely surprised and massacred on the spot ; a few individuals in other cases escaped. Hundreds of Indian traders on their way to the different forts and tribes, were murdered and their goods and stores, either captured or destroyed. At the same time com- menced a fierce, horrible and desolating war against the New York, Pennsylvania and Virginia borders. For weeks together, nothing was heard but news of whole families butchered and communities abandoned. Houses, stock, barns, everything, fell a prey to these human locusts, and the roads to the east were blocked with throngs of the poor, smitten Machillimackinac Captured. 117 End panic-stricken inhabitants. Other posts, too, would have fallen had not their commanders received timely intimations of the intended attack. The capture of so many by preconcerted strategy proves the scope and reach of the mind of Pontiac, the brains of the whole con- spiracy. Generally the commanders were secured in the first instance by parties admitted within the forts, under the pretence of business or friendship. At Maumee, the officer was betrayed by a squaw, who, by piteous entreaties persuaded him to go out with her a couple of hun- dred yards to the succor, as she said, of a wounded and dying man. The Indians ambushed and shot him. We will here refer to the inci- dents attending the attack on some of the forts. Machillimackinac Captured Through a Game of Ball. And first Machillimackinac, standing on the south side of the strait between Lakes Huron and Michigan, opposite to where Mackinaw now stands. It was a very important post — a place of deposit and a point of departure between the upper and lower countries. An extensive square area, surrounded by high palisades, numerous houses, barracks and other buildings, formed a smaller square within, and in the vacant space could at that day be seen the red uniforms of British soldiers, the gray coats of Canadians, and the gaudy Indian blankets, mingled in picturesque confusion, while a multitude of half-breeds and squaws, with children of every hue, strolled restlessly about the place at the time. All the British troops had not yet arrived and the garrison was supplemented by Canadians, the only ordnance on the bastions being two small brass pieces. The capture of this important post was given to the Sacs and Ojib- was, and the plan was thus : The King's birthday having arrived, a game of baggattaway was pro- posed by the savages. This game is played with a bat and ball, the former being about four feet long, curved and terminating in a sort of a racket. Two posts are placed in the ground at a distance of half a mile from each other ; each party has its post, and the game consists in throwing the ball, which is started at a point midway from the posts, and eacb party endeavoring to carry the ball to its own wicket. A well- contested game of this kind presents a scene of wonderful exertion and excitement. Hundreds of lithe and agile figures are leaping and bound- ing upon the plain. At times, the whole mass is crowded together, pushing, shoving, yelling and contending ; and then they scatter again and leap over the ground like hounds in full cry, rushing and striking and tripping their adversaries. 118 Our Western Border. At the proper moment it was easy for a selected party to throw the ball over the pickets of the fort, to be at once followed by a mad, shouting, tumultuous throng. Nothing could be more natural, or less likely to excite suspicion. This was, in fact, the very thing that was done, and to be still more sure of success, the Indians had persuaded many of the garrison and settlers to come without the pickets and lay wagers upon the keenly-contested game. Not fewer than four hundred were engaged on each side, and if possession of the fort could thus be gained, the rest was an easy matter. There was there at this time an English trader, Alexander Henry by name. On his route thither he had been several times warned to turn back, and was at length compelled to assume the disguise of a Canadian voyageur. When his canoes reached the fort, he had been received coolly by the Indians. Soon after he heard that a large number of Ojibwas were about to call on him, which excited his suspicion and alarm. They came, about sixty in number, headed by Miniavavana — a chief of commanding stature, and a singularly fine face and manner. They walked in single file, each with a tomahawk in one hand and scalping knife in the other. Their bodies were naked from the waist up. They were decorated in true Indian fashion, their faces painted and their bodies worked up with white clay. The chief commenced the pow-wow by asking when he had left Montreal, and observed that the English must be brave men and not afraid of death, since they dared to come so fearlessly among their enemies. After the pipes were smoked and while Henry was enduring all the tortures of suspense, the big chief made a more formal speech, in which he stated that the French King was their father, whom the Eng- lish had made war on and were his enemies, and that his enemies were theirs, too ; that the King of France was old and infirm and that, tired of making war, he had now fallen asleep and allowed the English to take Canada, but that his nap was almost done, and when he waked he would destroy the English utterly. He thus continued : "Englishman, although, indeed, you have conquered the French, you have not yet conquered us. We are not your slaves. These lakes, woods and mountains were left to us by our ancestors. We will part with them to none. Our young men have made war on your nation and many have been killed ; it is our custom to retaliate until the spirits of the slain are satisfied, and this can be done only in two ways ; first, by the blood of those who killed them; second, by covering the bodies of the dead by presents and thus allaying the resentment of the relatives. English* man, your King has never sent us any presents, nor made treaty with us; wherefore, he and we are still at war. We consider, however, that Machillimackinac Captured. 119 you have ventured among us unarmed, to trade with us and shall regard you as a brother. You may sleep in quiet, and we present you this pipe." A general smoke then ensued, and Henry made a formal reply. To this succeeded a request for whiskey. The trader reluctantly complied, and after distributing a few presents saw, with profound pleasure, the departure of his unwelcome guests. Soon after two hundred Ottawas came to the fort in a body, and summoned Henry and some other trad- ers to their presence. Here they were told they must distribute their goods? among the Indians, making a faithless promise to pay them in the Spring, and threatening death if they refused. Asking time to reflect on this gentle hint, the traders resolved to resist such a flagrant robbery, and accordingly, arming thirty of their men with muskets, they barri- caded themselves in Henry's house and kept watch all night. No at- tack, however, occurred and soon after the garrison was reinforced by the timely arrival of troops. Captain Etherington, the commandant of the fort, had received seve- ral warnings of the conspiracy among the Indians, but with that fatuity so common among British officers in America who despised their foes, not only disbelieved them, but threatened to send prisoner to Detroit the very next person who should keep the little settlement alarmed by such improbable and ridiculous tidings. Henry, too, had received warning and afterwards blamed himself much for his total disregard of it. An Ojibwa Chief, Wawatam by name, had taken a great fancy to him and hinted several times that something unusual was on foot. One evening Henry's door was pushed open without ceremony and the dark figure of Wawatam glided silently in. He sat down with a dejected air and expressed surprise at finding his brother still in the fort ; he was going next day to the Sault Ste Marie and begged Henry to go with him. He then asked if the Eng- lish had heard no bad news, and said his own ears were filled with the songs of evil birds. Seeing that the unsuspecting trader was totally unsuspicious, he went away with a sad and mournful face, but returned next morning with his squaw and again pressed Henry to go with him. When the trader demanded the reason for his urgency, he asked if he did not know that many bad, strange Indians were encamped about the fort. To-morrow, he said, they would demand whiskey and would all get drunk and it would be dangerous to stay. Wawatam let fall other plain hints, which, had Henry understood Ojibwa better, could not fail to have moved him from his apathy. As it was, the chief and squaw took a mournful departure, but not before both had shed tears. There came no later warning. The very next day happened the ball play alluded to. The incred- 120 Our Western Border. ulous Captain Etherington lounged outside the gate, having laid heavy wagers on the Ojibwas as against the Sacs. Several Indian chiefs and leading warriors, with eyes more snaky and glittering than usual, but apparently only intent upon watching the game, were grouped closely around. When the game was at its very highest and the surging crowd was swaying hither and yon, suddenly the ball soared high in the air and descending in a wide curve fell near the pickets of the fort. As if in pursuit of the fugitive ball, the players came rushing, in a maddened tumultuous throng, towards the chief gate which now stood invitingly open. One instant more and they had reached it. The dazed and stupefied English had no time to think or act. And now the shriU cries of the players all at once changed into the ferocious, blood-curd- ling war whoop. The warriors snatched from the outstretched hands of their squaws, their keen tomahawks which had been until now care- fully concealed. Some of the Indians rushed fiercely on those without, while others bounded into the fort, and all was soon a frightful carnage. At the very first moment the throats of Etherington and his lieutenant were clutched by sinewy hands, and they were led into the woods. Within the fort all were butchered without mercy. Henry was a witness to this horrid massacre, but not to the ball play, and has given a minute account of it and of his own subsequent ad- ventures and narrow escapes. A canoe had just arrived from Detroit, and he was moving to the beach to hear the news when the murderous war whoop reached his startled ears. Going to his window he saw the infuriated mob of savages hacking and scalping all inside the fort. Seizing his fowling-piece, he waited, but of course in vain, for the drum to beat to arms. In this dreadful interval he saw several of his ac- quaintances fall and then scalped alive, while struggling between the knees of the fiends who held them. He then thought of his own safety, but knew not what to do or where to turn. He saw many of the French Canadians looking calmly on and thence thought one of their houses would offer the best security. Only a low fence separated his own house from M. Langlade — the noted partisan half-breed who led the Lake Indians at Braddock's defeat — over which he climbed and begged for concealment. Langlade turned again to the window, from which he and his family were gazing at the massacre, and with the ex- pressive French shrug intimated he could do nothing. Henry's heart sank within him, but happily a Pawnee woman — one of the Sac cap- tives and a slave of Langlade's — beckoned to him to follow her. She then showed him the door to the garret and bade him conceal himself. She then followed him to the garret, locked the door after him and took away the key. The Trader Henry's Narrow Escapes. 121 Through an aperture, Henry's blood fairly curdled at witnessing the scalpings and mutilations of the dead and dying. From the hacked and slashed bodies of the slain, these insatiate demons were scooping up the blood in the hollow of their hands and quaffing it off amid shouts of rage and triumph. At last all being silent, there was a gen- eral cry of " all is finished." Just then were heard the footsteps of Indians entering Langlade's house and asking if any Englishmen were therein. Langlade said he could not say, but he thought not, but they might examine for themselves. The Pawnee woman had not only hid- den him, but kept the secret. The Trader Henry's Narrow Escapes from Death. Henry now heard the wretches trying the garret door. Some delay was caused by the absence of the key. His feelings may be faintly imagined — not described. He looked anxiously about for a hiding- place, finally creeping in among a lot of birch-bark sugar vessels. An instant after, four savages, snuffing about like blood-hounds, entered with tomahawk in hand and all besmeared with gore. The throbbings of the poor fugitive's heart were almost loud enough to betray him. The Indians walked about in every direction, and one approached so closely that he almost touched the trembling, cowering white man, but the obscurity favored him, and they finally returned down stairs, loudly boasting to Langlade how many scalps they had taken. Exhausted as he was by all he had gone through, Henry threw him- self on a feather bed and went to sleep. At dusk, Madame Langlade entered and was surprised to see him, but told him she hoped he would escape. Next morning he was again on the rack. Indian voices were heard below, to the effect that Henry, the trader, had not yet been found, and that he must surely be somewhere concealed. He then had the unspeakable torture to hear the affrighted Madame Lan- glade argue in French with her husband — who must by this time have known of Henry's concealment — that he should be given up, as, should the savages discover that they had anything to do with it, they would avenge it on their children, and it was better he should die than they. The husband at first resisted, but finally suffered her to prevail, and told the savages that he had heard Henry was in the house, and that he would put him into their hands. Judge of the poor man's horror at this revelation ! Considering all further efforts at concealment vain, he rose from the bed and presented himself full in view to the savages now entering the garret, and who were all drunk and nearly naked. One huge chief named Wenniway, 122 Our Western Border. whom Henry well knew, had his entire body smeared with charcoal mixed with grease, with the exception only of one white spot, two in- ches in diameter, which encircled either eye. This fellow seized Henry by the coat with one hand, while with the other he flourished a large carving knife, threatening to run it in his bosom, and all the time glaring steadfastly into his eyes. At length, after some seconds of dreadful suspense, he dropped his arm, saying, " I will not kill you !" adding that he had lost a brother by the English and that the trader should take his place. This was a joyful reprieve to poor Henry, who was ordered down stairs and taken to the warrior's cabin, where he was again threatened with death, since not only there but everywhere else, the savages were infuriated and maddened with liquor. Wenniway, however, consented that the prisoner should stay at Langlade's house, and for th<* present all was safe. Shortly after an Indian, who was largely in Henry's debt, called at the house and ordered him to follow him to the Ojibwa camp. Henry could do naught but obey, but seeing his dusky debter moving briskly off towards the bushes, he refused to go further, asserting that he be- lieved he meant to kill him. The savage said he was right, and seized the prisoner by the arm and raised his knife to strike. Henry flung the fellow from him, and ran for his life to the gate of the fort and called on Wenniway for protection. The chief ordered the savage to desist, but the latter, who was foaming at the mouth with rage, continued to strike furiously at him with his knife. Seeing Langlade's door open, the persecuted trader ran in and retreated to his snug garret, with the comfortable conviction, as he declares, that no Indian had power to harm him. His confidence was somewhat shaken when he was suddenly aroused from sleep by a light shining in his eyes, and heard voices summoning him to descend. What was his surprise and joy to find in the room be- low, Captain Etherington, Lieut. Leslie, Bostwick a trader, with Father Jonois, a Jesuit priest. The savages were about to enjoy another grand debauch, and their chiefs, knowing the extreme danger to which the captives would be exposed during these mad orgies, had conveyed them all to the fort and put them in charge of the Canadians. Including of- ficers, soldiers and traders, about twenty in all escaped the massacre. When Henry entered the room he found his three companions in ear- nest debate as to seizing the fort again, which the Indians, drunken and with their usual recklessness, had actually left occupied by twenty Eng- lishmen and about three hundred Canadians. They had even neglected to place a guard within the palisades. To close the gates and set the The Trader Henry's Narrow Escapes. 123 Indians at defiance appeared to be no difficult matter. Through the dissuasions of the priest, who argued that the Canadians would probably prove treacherous, and that if a failure should result, every Englishman in the place would be butchered, the daring but feasible project was abandoned. Next day Henry had to embark, in company with two traders and a soldier and guarded by seven Indians, in a canoe for the Isles du Castor. The heavy mists and the tempestuous weather compelled them to hug the shore, close beneath the wet, dripping forests. They had proceeded thus about twenty miles, when an Ottawa hailed them from the beach, asking the news and who were their prisoners. Some remarks followed while the canoe was approaching the shore, being in very shallow water. All at once a shrill yell was heard, and a hundred Ottawas, rising from among the trees and bushes,, rushed into the water and seized upon the canoe and prisoners. The astounded Ojibwas remonstrated in vain. The four whites were taken from them, and led to the shore. It turned out that the Ottawas were jealous and angry that the Ojibwas should have taken the fort and they have no share of the plunder. They professed much good will to the prisoners, assuring them that the Ojibwas were carrying them to the Isles du Castor merely to kill and eat them. The poor prisoners now found themselves on another canoe and going back to the fort so re- cently left. A flotilla of canoes, filled with Ottawas, accompanied them. They soon arrived, the Ojibwas looking on in silent amazement. The Ottawa warriors took no notice, but, all well armed, filed into the fort and took possession. The English looked upon the new-comers as protectors, but were somewhat disappointed, for the next day the Ojibwa Chiefs invited the Ottawa leaders to a council, placed before them presents, and their great war-chief, Miniavavana, who had conducted the fort attack, addressed them with much feeling, saying that their conduct had much surprised him ; that they had betrayed the common cause ; opposed the will of the Great Spirit, whkh had decreed that every Englishman must die. Pontiac had taken Detroit (which was false,) and every other fort had been destroyed. All Indians but this band of Ottawas had taken up the hatchet, and the French king had awakened from his sleep. He con- cluded by exhorting them to join the rest. The council now adjourned to the next day to give time to deliberate, when the rebuked Ottawas concurred with the Ojibwa views, and re- turned them some of the prisoners, retaining, however, the officers and a few of the soldiers. These they soon after carried to L'Arbre Croche and treated with kindness. The priest afterwards took a letter to De- 124 Our Western Border. troit from Etherington, telling Gladwyn of the capture of the fort ?.r.d asking immediate aid. This, of course, as we shall soon show, Gladwyn could not do, he himself being in the most desperate straits. The Ojibwas now carried the prisoners thus returned to them to one of their villages not far distant, and placed them in the council lodge as a prison, all who chose coming to jeer at and deride them. At the head sat the great war chief, Miniavavana, and, by his side, Henry's master, Wenniway. Shortly after, Henry observed an Indian stooping to enter at the low door, and to his great joy, recognized his friend and brother, Wawatam, who had, previous to the massacre, so earnestly begged him to go with him to the Sault. Wawatam said nothing, but as he passed the trader, pressed his hand, and then, proceeding to the head of the lodge, sat down with Wenniway and the war chief. After all had smoked awhile in silence, Wawatam went out, and soon returned with his squaw, bringing in her hand a valuable present, which she laid at the feet of the two chiefs. Wawatam then addressed them in an ear- nest and most feeling speech. Pointing to Henry, he expressed his sur- prise at seeing him a slave whom all knew was his brother, and if a re- lative to him, then also to them; and if so, then he could not, by their customs, be a slave. He then boldly charged Miniavavana with breach of faith, since, being fearful that Wawatam, on account of his love for Henry, would reveal the secret of the intended massacre, he had per- suaded him to cross the lake, which Wawatam had agreed to do on the express condition that Miniavavana would protect Henry, his friend and brother. He now claimed the performance of this promise, and brought valuable presents to buy off any claim which any one could have upon his brother as a prisoner. Wawatam had his will, and Henry soon found himself in the lodge of his rejoiced friend, where rich furs were spread for him to lie upon, food and drink brought for his refreshment, and everything done to promote his comfort that an ungrudging Indian hospitality could sug- gest. As he lay there in state in his lodge the next day, he heard a loud cry, and, looking through a crevice in the bark, saw the bodies of seven soldiers dragged out. He learned afterwards that a noted chief had just arrived from his wintering ground, and having come too late to take part in the fort massacre, he was anxious to manifest by this slaughter of victims how much he approved the proceedings. He had, therefore, calmly dispatched seven of the prisoners with his own knife. After a great victory by the Indians, it often happens that bodies of their victims are consumed at a formal war feast, in order, as they super* stitiously think, that thus their courage and hardihood may be increased. Such a feast now took place, many of the chiefs, however, partaking Obstinate Defence of Presq' Isle Fort. 125 with repugnance. Up to this point all had been triumph and exulta- tion, but now a revulsion of feeling began to set in. The bloody vic- tors grew fearful of the consequences. Absurd and indefinite rumors of an approaching revenge on the part of the English were afloat in the camp and they thought best to shift position to some more defensible locality. Three hundred and fifty warriors, with their families and household effects, embarked in canoes for the Island of Machillimacki- nac, Wawatam and Henry being of the number. A storm arose and the flotilla was so much in imminent peril, that prayers to the Great Spirit went up and a dog was sacrificed to appease the angry Manitou of the waters. This island (now called Mackinaw), owing to its beauti- ful location, its natural bridges and caverns of rocks, its charming sur- roundings, and the excellent fish with which the waters teemed, had long been a favorite resort of the Indians, and the lodges were set up with joy. But on the very next day messengers arrived from Pontiac to the effect that he was now besieging Detroit, and urged them to come to his aid. Their fierceness, however, had now all died out. A senseless alarm prevailed among them. A vigilant watch was kept day and night. The fish having mysteriously disappeared, famine, too, began to be felt. No complaints were heard, but with that stoical resignation which so distinguishes the red race, they patiently endured the inevitable. They gradually had to disperse to localities where food was more abundant. Henry, painted and attired like an Indian, remained with his friend Wawatam all Summer and Winter, fishing and hunting the bear and moose for a subsistence. Obstinate Defence of Presq' Isle Fort. JLet us now turn to the capture of Presq' Isle Fort, which stood near the site of the present town of Erie, on the lake of the same name. At one of its angles stood a massive, two-storied block-house, located on a projecting spit of land between the lake and a small brook, the bank of which, unfortunately, rose in a high, steep ridge, affording an excellent cover for assailants, while the lake bank offered similar facili- ties on another side. At early dawn on the 15th of June, the little garrison, commanded by Ensign Christie, saw themselves surrounded by two hundred Huron savages. At the first alarm they abandoned the main fort and took to the block-house. The savages, availing themselves of every command- ing position, crowded about the doomed fort and poured in a perfect hail of fire, searching out with their unerring missiles every vulnerable spot or crevice. They also shot fire arrows on the dry shingle roof, repeatedly setting it on fire, and hurled balls of burning pitch againsJ 1 26 Our Western Border. the walls. Then they rolled logs to the top of the ridges and from be* hind these secure breastworks, they fired with still greater effect. Some even had the temerity to dart across the interval and attempt to shelter themselves in the ditch, but all of these were killed or wounded. And now the tired defenders could see their implacable foes throwing up earth and stone behind their breastworks, a sure evidence of under- mining. A still more imminent peril threatened in the total failure of water, which had been exhausted in putting out the frequent fires. To pproach the well on the parade ground would be instant death, and so a new well was dug in the block-house itself. Before it was completed, Mie roof was again on fire and all the water that remained was poured out. Again the flames burst forth, when a soldier averted the total destruction of the place by leaping upon the roof amid a hail of hurt- ling bullets and tearing off the blazing shingles. Evening had now arrived. From earliest dawn, without one mo- ment's intermission, the heroic little garrison had fought or toiled. All night long was seen the constant flashing of guns from the Indian entrenchments. Morning brought fresh perils. Fortunate was it that now the well was complete, for the indefatigable foe had pushed their subterranean approaches as far as the commandant's house, which was set on fire, stifling the defenders with the intense heat and smoke. The outer wall of the block-house itself scorched, blackened and at length burst into flame. Still this Spartan band refused to yield, but passing up water from the new well, they finally subdued the fierce flames. The men were now utterly exhausted, yet still they toiled on within the wooden walls of their prison house, where the close air was sulphur- ous with the smoke of gunpowder. The fire continued until midnight of the second day, at which dread hour a bugle voice was heard crying out in French from the enemy's hold, that further resistance would be useless since all was now prepared for setting the block-house on fire from above and beneath at once. Christie asked if there were any among them who spoke English ; upon which a soldier Briton who had been long prisoner with the savages, came out, in his Indian dress, from behind the breastwork. He promised, if they yielded now, their lives should be spared ; if they longer fought, they must all be burned alive. Christie, resolving to hold out as long as possible, asked them to wait till morning. Agreed to, and while some of the garrison watched, the rest sank down in their tracks and snatched a hasty sleep. Next morn- ing Christie sent out two soldiers, as if to treat with the enemy, but, in reality, to learn truly whether they were able to set fire to the block- house. A preconcerted signal made by the two men, soon after reach- ing the breastwork, warned him that the insidious foe had made no idle Pontiac's Siege of Detroit. 127 boast. Two chiefs now met Christie between the breastwork and block- house, and to them this lake fort, defended with such intrepidity, was finally surrendered, on the express condition that the lives of the whole garrison should be spared, and they be allowed to retire to the nearest post. The poor soldiers, pale, wild and haggard, like men who had passed through the fire and smoke of dreadful battle, now issued from the block-house, and were immediately seized and afterwards sent to Be» troit, whence Christie soon after made a successful escape. The neigh- boring posts of Venango and Le Boeuf — the very ones which Washing- ton visited while they belonged to France, several years before — fell as easy prey at the same time. Pontiac's Siege of Detroit — An Ojibwa Maid Reveals the Plot. And now what about Detroit, the most important and formidable post of all, and hence entrusted to the wily and powerful Pontiac him- self ! The British garrison, at this time consisting of a hundred and twenty soldiers, partly regulars and partly American rangers, with about forty fur-traders, was quartered in a well-built range of barracks within the fort, which contained within its enclosure about a hundred houses. Its form was nearly square, a wooden bastion at each corner, a block-house over each gateway, and the palisades surrounding and con- necting all, about twenty-five feet high. * Besides the barracks, the only public buildings were a council house and a rude little church. The fur-traders, voyageurs and other Canadian occupants, could not be trusted in case of an Indian outbreak. The banks of tf.e Detroit river, connecting Lakes Erie and St. Clair and running before the fort's gates, were sparsely settled for many miles, chiefly by Indian fishermen and Canadians engaged in the Indian trade. Two small armed schooners, the Beaver and Gladwyn, lay anchored in the stream, ami several light pieces of artillery were mounted on the bastions. Within the limits of the settlement were three large Indian villages. A little below the fort were the Pottawattamies : directly across the river was a Wyandot village, and on the same side, five miles further up towards Lake St. Clair, Pontiac's band of Ottawas had an encampment. The fort was fortunate in having as commandant, Major Gladwyn, a British officer of pluck, merit and resolution, who had been one of Braddock's most trustworthy officers, and wounded at his memorable defeat. On the afternoon of May 5 th, a Canadian woman was on a visit to Pontiac's village to buy venison and maple sugar. She was startled at finding some of the warriors filing off the barrels of their guns, so as 6) reduce the length, stock and barrel, to about a yard. On her return^ 128 Our Western Border. ihe told what she had seen to some neighbors, when a blacksmith re marked that many of the savages had lately visited his shop and de- sired to borrow saws and files for a purpose which they would not dis* close. The Canadians were suspicious. M. Gouin, an old and wealthy settler, went to Gladwyn and conjured him to be watchful. But little heed was given to the friendly advice. In the Pottawattamie village lived a pretty Ojibwa girl who was on most intimate terms with Gladwyn. The very next day Catharine, aa she was called, repaired to Gladwyn's quarters with a pair of elk-skin moccasins, wrought with porcupine quills in divers figures, which he had requested her to make. There was something unusual in her man- ner ; her face was sad and downcast ; she said little and soon left the room, but continued loitering around as if her errand were yet unac- complished. At length Gladwyn's notice was attracted, and calling her in he pressed to know what was on her mind. She gave various ex- cuses, but finally, on Gladwyn's urging her, she was induced to re- luctantly reveal her dread secret. To-morrow, she said, Pontiac, with a large crowd of chiefs, will come to the fort, each armed with a shortened gun hidden under his blanket. Pontiac would demand to hold a friendly council, and after his speech would be over he would offer a wampum belt, which would be the sig- nal for an attack by the chiefs on the officers. These dispatched, they would then join their warriors in the streets, who, with curtailed rifles, likewise concealed, would push into the town under the pretence of trading. Every Englishman was to be butchered, but not the scalp oi a Canadian would be touched. Gladwyn, it may well be supposed, was astounded at this intelligence. He gathered all the information he could from the girl, and called his officers together. The garrison was weak, and the defences flimsy and in bad order. Every preparation was made to meet the possible if not probable emergency. Half the garrison were ordered under arms, and Gladwyn himself was so uneasy that he walked the ramparts that night and saw personally to every man's being at his post. As he thus anxiously paced the ramparts, he heard, at intervals, sounds of fearful por- tent — the dull, monotonous beat of the Indian drum and the wild chorus of quavering yells, as the warriors, around their distant camp fires, were celebrating in advance the triumphs of the dread to-morrow. At early sun, a cloud of bark canoes could be seen sweeping swiftly down the Detroit river. The plains about the fort began to be dotted over with groups of squaws and warriors, some naked and others fan- tastically arrayed in barbarous finery. Grim warriors, closely wrapped in their gaudy blankets, could be seen stalking with erect forms, with 2> £ DO CD £ HI • 3 5" q » o An Ojibwa Maid Reveals the Plot. 129 springy steps and restless, gleaming eyes towards the fort. Then with an air of assumed indifference they would lounge about or edge over to- wards the gate. All this stirring panorama of savage life boded no good. It seemed to confirm the Indian girl's tale. None but Gladwyn and his officers knew the secret, and they were prepared. The chiefs, headed by the majestic figure of Pontiac, had now made a landing, and strode, with furtive looks and measured steps towards the great gate. All were at once admitted, Gladwyn choosing to convince his crafty foes that though their treachery was detected, it was also despised. The whole garrison had been early ordered under arms, and commands had been issued to the traders that, as a large concourse of savages was to be held in the town that morning, it would be well to close their stores and arm their men. A Canadian going to his home, had shortly before met Pontiac and his sixty chiefs, all marching in Indian file. As he stood aside to let them pass, he recognized among them an old and familiar acquaintance. The savage returned his salutation with a deep, sullen voice, opened for an instant the folds of his blanket, revealing the rifle beneath, and with a smile and gesture of a peculiar significance, strode on with his fellows. And now the file of stern, proud and plumed chiefs are fairly within the palisades. All were wrapped to the throats with blankets. Their eyes gleamed around with the venom of the rattlesnake. As Pontiac's restless, roving glance caught the guard of soldiers and the rows of glistening arms ranged on either side of the gate, and as his quick ear caught the measured tap of the drum, he gave a sudden start, and a guttural exclamation of surprise and dismay came unbidden from his broad and swarthy breast. Even his vaunted stoicism was at fault as he beheld in these groups of soldierly and armed engages of the fur-traders, the probable ruin of his crafty plot. Stifling all signs of alarm, however, he and his haughty followers swept on to the council house. Entering, they saw Gladwyn and his officers seated in readiness to receive them, nor did their wary eyes fail to note that each had both sword and pistols in belt. All this, added to the fact of a larger number of troops than usual being visible, caused the conspirators to exchange meaning and uneasy glances. "Why," coolly and calmly demanded Pontiac, "do I see so manyoJf my father's young men standing with their guns in the street?" Glad- wyn answered simply that it was for drill and exercise, with which answer Pontiac was fain to be content and straightway began his speech. Holding in his hand the fatal wampum belt, he professed the strongest attachment to the English and declared, with Indian figurativeness, that y 130 Our Western Border. he had come to brighten the chain of friendship and smoke the pipe o( peace. The officers watched him keenly, and when he raised the belt as if to give the preconcerted signal, at a motion from Gladwyn the clash of arms and peal of drum was heard from without. Pontiac stood for a moment dazed and confounded ! All his schenv ings dashed in an instant ! The color mounted to his swarthy visage, and instead of giving the belt in the mode proposed, he handed it in the usual way and soon sat down alarmed and perplexed. The general version of this scene is, that Gladwyn rising from his seat, drew the chief's blanket aside, exposed the hidden gun and sternly rebuked him for his perfidy, but his own official letters do not confirm this, but state that he and his officers remained seated as before. It was manifestly his policy to prevent the fulfillment of the plot without bringing matters to an open rupture. A silence which could be almost felt, ensued. At length Gladwyn arose, with calm eye and unruffled brow, and in a brief formal speech assured the assembled chiefs that he would extend friendship and pro- tection so long as it was deserved, but that the first act of aggression on their part would be followed by a signal vengeance. The council then broke up, Pontiac stating that they would return in a few days with their squaws and children that they might all shake hands with their fathers, the English. The baffled and discomfited savages soon after took their departure, their hearts, if possible, burning with a still more venomous rancor at the ignominious failure of their deep-laid plot. This account differs materially from those given in the popular border books, but besides comporting better with the probabilities of the case, it agrees with Gladwyn's official report to Amherst, which distinctly states: "And Pontiac made a speech which I answered calmly, without intimating my suspicions of their intentions, and after receiving some trifling presents, they went away to their camp." The foiled and chagrined Pontiac, baffled in the crafty scheme which he himself had conceived, retired to his hut to brood over his revenge. The snake was only scotched, not killed. He resolved to visit Glad- wyn once more to convince him he had been deceived. The next day, bearing in his perfidious hand the sacred calumet of peace, he had the impudence to assert to the English that evil birds had sung lies in their ears; that they loved their English brothers, and to prove it, had come to smoke the pipe of peace. The same day he gathered the young men of all the tribes to a game of ball which took place with great noise and excitement. At nightfall the garrison was startled with loud discordant veils. The drums beat to arms and the troops were ordered to their posts. Tt proved, however, only the shouts of the victors, and all soon became silent as usual. Hostilities Commenced. 131 The next day throngs of Indians commenced to gather about the fort and Pontiac, advancing singly from the multitude, approached the gate which he found barred against him. The baffled chief shouted to the sentinels and haughtily demanded why he was excluded. Gladwyn re- plied that he himself could enter if he wished, but his people must stay out. Thus openly rebuffed, the mask was now thrown off entirely. With a scowl of hate and an ejaculation of rage, Pontiac strode to- wards his followers who were lying in squads prone upon the ground, and at a signal all leaped up and ran like so many fiends towards the house of an Englishwoman who was at once made the first bloody vic- tim. Another gang, with frightful yells, hurried to the river, leaped into their canoes, paddled swiftly to the Isle au Cochon and murdered an Englishman named Fisher, who lived there. Hostilities Commenced — Officers Captured — Anecdotes of Pontiac. Pontiac retired alone. He was terrible in his rage and none dare approach. Pushing a canoe from the shore, he drove it rapidly to the Ottawa town and imperiously ordered that it should be moved to the other shore. The enraged chief then, with tomahawk in hand, hideous in war paint and plumed for battle, leaped into the midst of his warriors, and brandishing his weapons, denounced vengeance on the cowardly English. The war dance over, a few hours found all the Ottawa community with huts pitched on the fort side of the river. A formidable band of ferocious Ojibwas from Saginaw river joined him. News came also to the fort of the murder of two English officers above Lake St. Clair. The war had now commenced. Every Englishman in the fort was ordered under arms, and Gladwyn walked the ramparts all night. At the earliest streak of dawn the horrid war whoop was heard from all parts. The combined tribes environed the fort on every side but that on the river and a storm of leaden hail beat all day against the feeble barrier. With characteristic caution the savages scarcely ever revealed their forms. Within gunshot of the palisades was a cluster of out- buildings, behind which a swarm of the yelping reds found shelter, but at last, teased by their impudence, a cannon loaded with red-hot spikes was turned in their direction and the houses were soon in flames, upon which the disconcerted savages broke away in a body, and this was the first of a beleaguerment which endured for eight months and which was conducted with a skill, a system and a persistency that has no parallel in all Indian history. To give details of this long siege would 332 Our Western Border. fill a volume; we have only room for a mere menticn of the mora salient and interesting incidents which marked its course. Gladwyn still believed that the whole outbreak was but a passing spasm of anger, and, being out of provisions, he concluded to open negotiations, under cover of which he could gather supplies. Accord- ingly La Butte, the interpreter, with two old Canadians, proceeded to the Indian camp and delivered their message. Pontiac was civil and courteous ; listened patiently, but his heart was unmoved. The Cana- dians were deceived and La Butte hurried back with the report that peace might readily be had by a few timely gifts. On hurrying back, however, he found little progress had been made, Pontiac, with char- acteristic dissimulation, evading every direct proposal, but pretending that he wished to hold council with his English fathers and was espe- cially desirous of seeing at his camp Major Campbell, the second in command, and a veteran officer who had gained their confidence by his justice and kindness. Gladwyn feared treachery, but the Major himself so pressed the mission that Campbell was at last permitted to depart to the Indian camp, accompanied by Lieutenant McDougal and several Canadians. Meanwhile M. Gouin, in moving from lodge to lodge, soon saw and heard enough to convince him that the two officers were advancing into the lions' very jaws. He hastened to warn the advancing embassy. Too late ! They would not be diverted but were soon approaching the little bridge that led over Parent's Creek, just beyond which lay Pontiac's camp. No sooner were the red uniforms noted than the swarming multitude raised a horrible outcry. The women and children seized clubs and stones and rushed forward as if intent upon making a gauntlet for the twain to run. Pontiac's stern voice, however, allayed the tumult. He shook hands and made a way for them to the central lodge, and pointing to some skins on the ground, bade them be seated. The lodge was at once thronged with chiefs, while a fierce, eager, jostling crowd of commoners glared at them, with tigerish looks, from the out- side. Major Campbell answered Pontiac's curt speech, but was heard with an anxious silence. For a full hour the alarmed officers saw con- stantly before them the same dense throng of swarthy, inscrutable faces, bending on them a stony, unwavering glare. At length the anxious Major, desirous of testing his true position, arose to go to the fort. Pontiac made signs for him to resume his seat. " My father," he said in his deep, guttural tones, "will sleep to-night in the lodges of his red children." The gray-haired veteran was a prisoner ! Many were burning to sacrifice the two officers on the spot, but Pontiac was too politic for that extreiae measure. They were conducted to the house of M. Officers Captured. 133 Miloche and treated well. If two Indians had not happened at the time to be their prisoners at the fort, they would probably have had a short shrift. Next day Pontiac crossed to the Wyandot camp and succeeded in winning the whole tribe — which had hitherto been divided — to join in the war. They were the best fighters of all the tribes and soon after distinguished themselves. Hostilities were now resumed, but with more system than before. At a meeting of officers, Gladwyn alone, it is said, favored holding out. Their condition was desperate. Provisions were scarce. The houses were of wood, thatched with straw, and could easily be inflamed, and a general onslaught — which could scarcely be resisted — was feared. This threat, however, was entirely contrary to Indian tactics. Their skill consists in winning without loss. A victory with them is considered dearly purchased by the death of a single warrior. Time passed on without any change or relief. For many weeks all slept in their clothes. Volunteer parties sallied out and cut down trees, or destroyed buildings until the dusky foe had no shelter. The two vessels in the river, sweep- ing the northern and southern curtains of the work with their fire, were of great aid in keeping off the swarming savages. Still, however, these wormed their way through the grass, or taking advantage of every shelter, would manage to crawl unobserved close to the palisades and let fly their arrows, tipped with burning tow. Water, however, was ever ready, and all such attempts proved abortive. Pontiac neglected no art or wile that savage tactics could suggest. He even endeavored to draw from the French all they knew about the European methods of attacking a fortified place by regular approaches. He sent word, also, to Gladwyn, that if the place was given up, he might safely return with his whole force aboard his vessels, but that if he persisted, all would be burnt alive. Gladwyn answered, he cared nothing for empty threats ; yet still he was overwhelmed with anxiety, for he now learned that over a hundred fierce Ojibwas from Grand river had joined Pontiac, and all, English and Canadian, slept, with arms ready, upon the ramparts. Every effort was made to gather and hus- band every kind of provisions, but, notwithstanding all, the post must have been abandoned had not a few Canadians provided it, in the most secret method, with cattle, hogs and other supplies. For a long time the Indians were kept ignorant of what was going forward in this line, and they themselves commenced to suffer from hunger. Pontiac at first visited all the Canadian houses on both sides of the river and squeezed them bare of supplies. To deputations complaining of these proceedings, he made earnest and artful speeches, asserting that he and his men were fighting the British on French account ; that he 134 Our Western Border. \ had not called on them for aid, but that his warriors must be fed. Pon« tiac then organized a regular commissariat and issued bills of credit drawn upon birch bark, signed with the figure of an otter, and, what is a greater marvel, they were punctually redeemed. Pontiac was the brains of all. He was ever on the alert, endeavoring to learn all he could, and exceedingly curious as to the best modes of making war and of manufacturing cloth, knives, guns, and other articles needed. Gen- eral Gage himself stated, as a testimony to his keen and subtle genius, that he kept two secretaries, one to write and one to read messages, and managed to keep each of them ignorant of what was transacted by the other. Major Rogers, who was intimately acquainted with him, says : ' 'He puts on an air of majesty and princely grandeur, and is greatly honored and revered by all his subjects. Although undeniably artful, treach- erous and revengeful, yet, according to Indian ideas of honor and vir- tue, he was bold, fierce and ambitious." Two anecdotes will serve to show his character: Some time after Rogers came up with his troops, he sent Pontiac a bottle of brandy, as a present, by the hands of a friendly Indian. Those about the chief, always suspicious that the English wished to dispatch such a powerful enemy and get him out of the way, argued that the brandy was drugged, and that he should not touch it. Pontiac listened quietly, poured out a cup of the liquor, and immediately quaffed it off, saying that the man whose life he had once saved had no power to kill him. At another time, during the siege, he quietly entered the house of M. Baby, who was the Canadian known to be most friendly to the English, and the one who had secretly supplied them with provisions, &c. Seating himself by the fire he, for some time, looked steadily at the embers. At length he said that he had heard the English had offered Baby a bushel of silver for the scalp of his friend, Pontiac. Baby in- dignantly scouted the story. Pontiac keenly studied his face, and said, "My brother has spoken the truth, and I will show that I believe him." He then remained all evening, and composedly wrapping himself in his blanket, he slept in full confidence till morning. At another time Baby complained that some Wyandots came night after night and stole his hogs and cattle. Pontiac stealthily arrived at the house about midnight, and pacing to and fro among his friend's barns, he at length discerned the dark forms of the plunderers stealing through the gloom. He ap- peared before them like an apparition. "Go back to your village, you Wyandot dogs ! If you tread again on this man's lands, you die ! " They slunk back abashed. Over the Wyandots Pontiac could claim no legitimate authority, yet his powerful spirit forced respect and obe- dience from all who approached him. A Large Convoy Captured. 135 A Large Convoy Captured — A Thrilling Boat Scene. While all this was going on, the British commandant at New York was ignorant of Gladwyn's danger. With the opening of Spring, how- ever, a supply of provisions and ammunition had been sent up the lakes for the use of Detroit and other posts above. The boats of this con voy were now approaching, and Gladwyn's garrison awaited then coming with increasing anxiety. Gladwyn ordered one of his vessels to Niagara to hasten forward the convoy. The schooner set sail, but the very next day, as she lay becalmed at the entrance of Lake Erie, she was surrounded by a cloud of canoes, in the foremost of which was placed, as a protection from hostile shot, the veteran Major Campbell ; but the brave old man at once called out never to mind him, but to fire away. Happily at that moment a fresh breeze sprang up, and the schooner escaped. On May 30th all Detroit was thrown into a won- derful stir by the announcement of a look-out that the long-expected convoy was in sight : at some distance below could be seen a line of boats, England's flag over them, and their oars flashing in the sun. With one accord the excited garrison and populace broke into three hearty cheers, while a cannon from one of the bastions sent out its roar of welcome. But suddenly every cheek was blanched with horror ! Dark, naked figures were seen rising, with wild gesture, in the boats, while in lieu of the expected responsive salute could be faintly heard in the distance the triumphant whoop of the savage. Horrible thought ! The convoy was in the hands of the enemy ! Officers and men stood gazing with mournful silence, when a thrilling incident just then oc- curred which caused their hearts for a time to stand still. In each of the approaching boats, of which there were eighteen, sev- eral of the captured soldiers were (guarded by many armed savages) compelled to act as rowers. In the first, as it happened somehow, were four soldiers but only three savages. As stated, one of the two vessels which lay along the water front of the fort had been sent to Niagara to hasten up this very convoy. The other lay anchored in the stream, and when the first of the advancing flotilla came opposite to it, the steersman conceived a daring plan of escape. He called to his com- rade to seize the Indian who sat in front and throw him overboard. The man answered that he was not strong enough, and so, as if fatigued with rowing, the two changed places. As the bold soldier stepped for- ward, he suddenly seized the powerful savage by his scalp lock and with the other hand gripping his girdle, he gave him a lift and tossed him mto the river. The boat rocked till the water surged over the gunwale. The indomitable savage, thus so unceremoniously treated, would not 136 Our Western Border. tet go, but clinging fast to the soldier's clothes and drawing himself up- wards, he stabbed the soldier again and again, and then dragged him over. Both went down the swift current, engaged in a death-grapple, and finally sank from sight, a few ripples and gurgles only serving to show the place of disappearance. The other two Indians leaped from the boat, while the two remaining soldiers shouted for aid and pulled for the vessel. The savages on shore opened a heavy fire, while the other boats darted forward in close pursuit. The poor soldiers strained every nerve to escape. One of them was soon wounded, and the light canoes rapidly gained on their boat. Escape seemed hopeless, when all at once flash ! boom ! and a ball from the anchored vessel came dancing along the water, marking its way by a line of foam and narrowly miss- ing the foremost canoe. The pursuers paused in dismay ; a second shot scatters the Indians on shore, and the prisoners reach the vessel in safety, and are soon surrounded with an eager, questioning throng. The story they related was a sad one. Lieut. Cuyler had left Fort Ni- agara, May 13, with ninety-six men. They had made almost their whole journey without seeing a foe, when, on the 28th, the boats had landed not far from the mouth of Detroit river. A man and boy en- tered the woods to gather fire-wood, when a skulking savage leaped out and cleft his head with a single blow of his tomahawk. Cuyler imme- diately formed his band in a semicircle before the boats, when the en- emy opened fire from their ambush, and after a hot blaze of musketry for a while, the whole painted, yelping body of them broke from the woods with horrible yells, and rushed with the greatest impetuosity upon the very centre of the line, which was at once broken and put to flight, the men becoming panic stricken, flinging down their guns and rushing to their boats. Five of these were gotten into the water and pushed off crowded with the terrified troops. Cuyler found himself utterly de- serted, and was compelled to wade up to his neck and scramble into one of the boats. The yelling savages, crowding two more of the boats that were abandoned, gave immediate pursuit, capturing three of the five boats, their hapless crews making little or no resistance. The other two, in which was Cuyler, made their escape. They rowed all night, landing in the morning on a small island. Be- tween thirty and forty men were crowded in these two ; the rest were all carried captive. Cuyler now turned back and made for Fort San- dusky, which finding destroyed, he rowed on to Presq' Isle, and thence back to Niagara. The victors in this well-planned stroke were the Wy- andots or Hurons, who, for some days, had lain in ambush at the mouth of the Detroit. Seeing the confusion of the soldiers, they had forgot- ten their usual caution, and secured success by a prompt and vigorous Frightful Massacre of Prisoners. 137 rush. All the valuable stores fell prize to the savages, but the whiskey was nearly undoing them. It was carried to the respective camps, and for days they presented scenes of riot and revelry. The hot and mad- dening liquor was poured into birchen vessels, and the savages would crowd about, scoop it up in double-handfuls and quaff it off like so much water. The effect may be imagined. While some sat apart totally overcome or wailing, whining and moaning in maudlin drunkenness, the major part were excited to beastly ferocity. Old quarrels were kindled afresh and jealousies among the different tribes awakened, and had not the poor squaws taken the precaution to hide all the weapons, there would have been a wholesale slaughter. As it was, some were killed, many were wounded, and others had their noses completely bitten off. The same evening two of the revelers came running directly towards the fort in all the vain-glory and pot-valor inspired by these deep potations, but being arrested by two leaden messengers, they leaped high into the air like a pair of wounded bucks and fell dead in their tracks. Frightful Massacre of Prisoners — Capture of More Forts Announced. Horrible, indeed, was the fate of all the poor prisoners ! At night some Canadians came into the fort bringing appalling and sickening re- ports of the dreadful scenes enacted at the Indian camps. The soldiers, beginning to fear a like miserable fate, gathered about them, and, fro- zen with horror, listened to the shocking and frightful narratives. A deep gloom settled down upon the devoted garrison. Ten days after, naked corpses, gashed with knives, scorched with fire and mutilated out of all semblance to humanity, came floating down the pure waters of the Detroit, where fish came up to nibble and gnaw at the clotted blood that clung to their ghastly faces. We naturally hesitate to detail the awful tortures inflicted upon these unhappy prisoners. Sixty-four of the sixty-six were compelled to run the gauntlet, and were then sub- jected to all the numerous tortures that Indian ingenuity could devise. All, all their hellish skill was utterly exhausted in devising new modes of inflicting agony. The remaining two, who were too much exhausted to run the gauntlet, were inhumanly clubbed to death. Not long after, the garrison saw issuing from the woods which ex~ tended beyond the pastures in the rear of the fort, a line of savages painted entirely black, each bearing a scalp fluttering from the end of a pole. This was to announce the fate of Fort Sandusky, which had been attacked by a band of Hurons. Among the few survivors was the com- mandant, Ensign Paully, who had been brought to Pontiac's camp, 138 Our Western Border. pelted by squaws and children with stones and sticks, and forced to sing and dance for the amusement of his tormentors. He was saved by a hideous old hag, who chose to adopt him in place of her deceased war- rior. Having no other alternative but the stake, poor Paully for a while did the honors of the Ottawa family. Gladwyn soon received a letter from this impromptu Indian husband, giving a full account of Fort Sandusky's capture. Paully had been informed that seven Indians whom he knew, were waiting at the gate to speak with him. He or- dered them to be admitted. Arrived at his quarters, two of the treach- erous scoundrels seated themselves on either side, the rest being scat- tered about the room. The pipes were lighted and pow-wowing began, when a reddy, who stood in the door-way, made the signal, and sud- denly the astounded Ensign was pounced upon and disarmed, while out- side could be heard the confused noise of yells and shrieks, the firing of guns and the hurried tramp of feet. Soon after, led forth by his cap- tors, Paully saw the parade ground strewn with the corpses of his butch- ered garrison. He was then put in a canoe, and as, amid thick dark- ness, the party pushed from the shore, their path was illumined by the sheets of flame bursting out on all sides from the doomed fort. On the heels of this news came the knowledge that two more strong bands of O jib was had joined Pontiac, swelling his force to near a thousand war- riors. The sleepless garrison, worn out by fatigue and privations, and har- assed by constant petty attacks and alarms, were yet farther saddened by thickening tidings of disaster. Of all the posts scattered through the vast wilderness west of Niagara, their own and Fort Pitt alone held out. On June 15 th a number of Pottawattamies approached the gate with four prisoners. The Indians wished an exchange, which was effected. They proved to be Ensign Schlosser and three privates from the post of St. Joseph, which stood at the head of Lake Michigan among the swamps and solitudes, and at an unmeasured distance from the abodes of civilization. On May 25 th an officer learned that the fort was surrounded with savages, and that the parade was also crowded with them — all very insolent and disorderly. While busying himself mustering together the Canadians, En- sign Schlosser heard a wild cry from the barracks. The sentinel at the gate was tomahawked and a free passage opened to the surging crowd without. In less than two minutes the fort was plundered, eleven men killed, and Schlosser with the only three survivors bound fast and carried to Detroit. Then came the awful news from Forts Machillim- \ckinac and Miami and Presq' Isle — which we have already anticipa- ted. Had American rangers garrisoned all these posts, some of them, Capture of More Forts Announced. 139 it is probable, might have been saved, but foreign troops were not well qualified, either by discipline or experience, for coping with the wily and snaky redmen of the west. It required a long and a peculiar kind of training. On June 19th a rumor reached Gladwyn from without that the vessel he had some time previously sent to Niagara had appeared off Turkey Island, and was awaiting a favorable breeze to work up the stream. She had gone to Niagara where she remained until Cuyler's return making known the miserable fate of his enterprise. Taking him and the survivors aboard, the vessel hastened back to Detroit, and was now almost within sight of the fort, but how to safely reach it — there was the problem remaining to be solved ! The river channel was in some places narrow, and nearly a thousand Indians, led on by such a plotter as Pontiac, were on the alert to obstruct a passage. Nothing was heard more of the vessel for several days, when a great commotion was visible among the redskins outside, large parties of whom could be seen passing down the river. In the evening came the news that the vessel was attempting to ascend the stream and that all the savages had gone down to prevent her, upon which two cannon were fired as an an- nouncement that the fort still stood. Let us see how it fared on board the little ship so anxiously expected. She had entered the channel between the main shore and Fighting Island, having on board about sixty men, but only a few visible on deck. The rest were carefully kept concealed in the hope that thus an Indian attack might be induced. Just before reaching the narrowest part of the channel, the wind died away and the anchor was dropped. Right above, the redskins had erected on Turkey Island and behind a "blind" of bushes, a log breastwork. Ignorant of this but still wary and cautious, the crew kept strict watch for hours. At last night came down. The current plashed with a monotonous sound about the bows of the schooner, while on either hand the densely-wooded shores lay shrouded in deepest obscurity. At length the keen-eyed sentinel in the shrouds thought he could dis- cern various moving objects. The men were quietly ordered upon deck and all made ready for resisting an attack. A hammer blow on the mast was to be the signal to fire. A flotilla of birch canoes, filled with dark, crouching forms, kept gliding stealthily down and about the ship, when suddenly the dark side of the slumbering vessel burst into a blaze of musketry. From the ponderous jaws of the cannon also was belched forth a hail of hurtling grape which flew tearing among the frail canoes, destroying several, putting the rest to flight, killing fourteen Indians and wounding many more. Recovering from their surprise, 140 Our Western Border. the Indians commenced a fire from their concealed breastworks, upon which the schooner tripped her anchor and dropped down the river. Several days after she had better success, for although constantly fired on, she forced a channel and signalized her approach by sending a thick shower of grape among the huts of the Wyandot village, killing some and causing the rest to decamp yelpingly for the sheltering woods. Then furling her sails she lay peacefully at anchor beside her consort. The schooner brought the long-needed supplies, as also the import- ant news that the seven-year war was over and that peace had formally been declared between France and England. All Canada had been ceded to England, and the French about Detroit were subjects of King George. To many this news was exceedingly repugnant, and they went about the beleaguering hosts, asserting that the peace news was but a weak invention of Gladwyn ; that the French King would never aban- don his children, and that even then a great army was ascending the St. Lawrence, while another was coming over from the Illinois. Pon- tiac and his dusky bands clung tenaciously to this delusive hope, and he showed no let-up in his zeal and activity, but sent a message to Glad- wyn strongly urging his surrender, adding that eight hundred Ojibwas were daily expected, and that all his influence could not prevent them from taking the scalp of every resisting Briton. The friendly invitation was rejected with scorn. The Ottawa chief now made a determined effort to range the Cana- dians on his side and force them to take an active part. He called them to a grand council and harangued them with all the tact, fervoi and eloquence of which he was the well-known master. He concluded thus : " You must be either wholly French or wholly English ! If you are French, take up that war belt and lift the hatchet with us ! but if English, then we declare war upon you. My brothers, I know this ,is a hard thing, but there is no choice. Look upon the belt and let us hear your answer?" One of the Canadians made an answering speech, in which he held up the French King's proclamation, telling all his Canadian children to sit quiet and obey the English till he came, and pertinently asked Pon- tiac what he could reply to that. The Ottawa chief sat for a moment silent, mortified and perplexed, but made other speeches, the result of which was that he secured the enlistment of a lot of low, swaggering trappers, voyageurs, half-breeds and other nondescript vagabonds of the woods who were hanging about attired in Indian leggins and ornaments. The better class of Canadians, however, were shocked at this defection and protested against it. Pontiac, however, shook hands with the rene- gades, gave them a grand feast of dogs the next day, and the next night Old Major Campbell Butchered. 141 a mixed party of these whites and Indians entrenched themselves neat the fort. Old Major Campbell Butchered — Indians Send Down Fire Rafts. At daybreak they were detected ; the gate was thrown open and Lieutenant Hay, with a picked party, rushed forth and dislodged them. It happened that a soldier who had been several years a Delaware pris- • oner, knelt down before one of the savages, who had been killed in the sortie, tore away the scalp and shook it exultingly towards the fugitives. This act excited wonderful rage among the Indians and proved the death warrant of poor Major Campbell. The same evening a white man was seen running briskly towards the fore, closely pursued by Indians. The panting fugitive was admitted by the wicket, and proved to be Paully, the commandant of Sandusky, who, as stated, had married an old squaw and was so profoundly disgusted with his bargain that he prefer- red to risk his death rather than longer endure her odious embraces. Through him the horrified garrison heard of Major Campbell's fate. The Indian who had been that morning killed and scalped proved to be a nephew to Wasson, a great Ojibwa chief. On hearing of the deatlj, the infuriated uncle blackened his face in sign of revenge, assembled party, and repairing to Meloche's house, where Campbell was confined, they seized, bound and shot him to death with arrows, and then muti- lated his body in a most barbarous manner. His heart was eaten to make them courageous, a practice not uncommon among Indians after killing a foe of acknowledged bravery, and of which we shall give hereafter a most notable instance in the case of the gallant Major Sam McColloch, of West Virginia. Pontiac, according to some, was privy to the act, but according to others, he was greatly incensed at it and Wasson was obliged to fly to Saginaw to escape his fury. Lieutenant McDougal had previously made good his escape. The two armed schooners now commenced to diversify the monotony of the long siege by tackir g every now and then up and down the river and battering the Indian camps and villages. They soon became to the Indians objects of revengeful hate, and attention was turned to their destruction. One night in July a blazing raft, formed of two boats tied together by ropes and filled with pitch-pine and other combusti- bles, was sent down, but missed. Several nights after, the look-out saw a vivid, glowing spark on the water above, which grew brighter and brighter, and larger and larger, till it arose in a forked flame and then burst out into a conflagration. It was a fire raft and narrowly missed the vessels, passing down between them and the fort, brightly gilding their tracery of ropes and spars, lighting up the bastions and formal rows 142 Our Western Border. of palisades, disclosing the white Canadian cottages on either shoie and revealing the dusky margin of the gloomy forest, behind and in front of them lines of dusky savages, who expectantly stood opposite to watch the effect of their artifice. Lo and behold, now a flash is seen! a loud thunder breaks the stillness and a shower of grape drives the disappointed spectators under cover. Undeterred by these failures, the savages commence a third raft, much larger and different and more formidable in construction than the others, • but on hearing that Gladwyn had moored boats connected by chains far in advance of the ships, they found their four days' work would be in vain and desisted. It was now several months since the commencement of the siege. The Indians had displayed a higher degree of steadiness and per- sistence than had ever been displayed in their history, but some now commenced to flag in their zeal. A few Wyandots came to the fort and begged for peace, which was granted. Pottawattamies followed, who, upon delivering up the captives among them, were also allowed peace. The fort, however, was still closely besieged by the Ottawas and Ojibwas. In the meantime, without the knowledge of the weary garrison, a strong reinforcement was on its way. Captain Dalzell had left Niagara with twenty- two barges, bearing two hundred and eighty men, with cannon, ammunition, &c. Passing Presq' Isle, they viewed with sur- prise its scorched and blackened block-house and the mines and breast- works made by the Indians : thence they went to Fort Sandusky — or rather its site — and marching inward, they burnt a Huron village, de- stroyed their crops, and successfully made their way up Detroit river, under cover of a heavy fog. As soon as the mists had rolled away, the garrison were summoned to behold the approaching convoy. A salute from the fort was at once answered from the boats, and all apprehen- sion of its having fallen into the enemy's hands, was removed. The savages opened a hot fire, and managed to kill and wound fifteen of the troops, who belonged to the fifty-fifth and eightieth regiments, together with last, but by no means least — twenty American rangers, headed by the gallant Major Rogers. The ardent Dalzell wished to lose no time, and strongly insisted with Gladwyn that the hour was at length corne when an overwhelming blow should be delivered to Pontiac. He asked permission to march out the following night and attack Pontiac's camp. Gladwyn, better ac- quainted with the strength and character of the foe he had opposed to him, was decidedly averse to the movement, but finally yielded a re- luctant consent. Pontiac had lately moved his camp from the mouth A Fierce and Desperate Struggle. 143 of Parent's Creek, and was now posted several miles above, behind a great marsh, where his camp could be secure against the ship's cannon. Preparations were now actively made for an attack, but, by an inex- cusable carelessness, the design was made known to a few Canadians. A Fierce and Desperate Struggle at Bloody Run. About two o'clock on the morning of July 31st, the devoted band, two hundred and fifty, all told, filed noiselessly out into the road and commenced their march, flanked on the water side by two large bat- eaux, each bearing a swivel on the bow. Lieutenant Brown had the advance, Captain Gray the centre, and Captain Grant the rear. The night was still, close and sultry, and the men marched in a light un- dress. The watch dogs barked as they passed the row of Canadian cot- tages, and the aroused inmates heard the heavy, measured tramp, tramp, tramp, and looked on the spectral band with alarm. Little did they think — these regulars never do — that Indian scouts watched every step of their progress, and that Pontiac, duly apprised of the projected attack, had broken up his camp, and was in rapid march against them, backed by all his warriors. Scarce two miles from the fort, Parent's Creek — from that night called Bloody Run — descended a wild and broken defile and entered the Detroit amid a rank growth of grass and sedge. A few rods from its mouth the road crossed it by a narrow wooden bridge. Just beyond the bridge, the land rose in abrupt ridges parallel to the little stream, their tops garnished with rude entrenchments formerly made by Pontiac to protect his camp. Here were, too, piles of fire-wood, besides strong picket fences. What choicer ground could be selected for a battlefield ! So thought the astute and crafty Pontiac, and behind all these obstructions and en- trenchments crouched his swarthy warriors, lying with gleaming eyes and panting bosoms but silent as snakes, as they heard the distant foot- fall of the foes they had so long waited for in vain. The fearless little command pushed rapidly through the dark towards the bridge, which was dimly visible in front, the ridges beyond seeming like a wall of blackness. The advance was half way across the bridge and the main body just entering upon it, when a horrible din of blood-curdling yells and shrieks burst all at once out of the surrounding blackness, accompanied by the blaze and rattle of musketry, Half the advance melted away ; the stunned and appalled survivors shrank back in affright, causing a sudden recoil of the whole body. Dalzell was the first to recover. Raising his bugle voice above the horrid clamor, he rallied his men, 144 Our Western Border. hurried to the front, and led them to the attack. Again the crouching redskins poured in a murderous, withering volley, and again the little command was checked : but their gallant leader shouted forward ! and they dashed over the bridge and charged up the heights beyond. Charged what ! Not a redskin was there to oppose them i None could be found anywhere ! Yet still their mysterious rifles flashed out constant destruction, and their screeching war whoops made the night hideous. The English forged forward amid the pitchy darkness, and soon became inextricably enmeshed amid a maze of outhouses and en- closures. The fire became hotter and hotter on the side of the Indians. To advance further would be a cruel and useless slaughter. There was nothing left but to retire and wait till daylight. Grant's company re- crossed the bridge and took station on the road. A small party was left in advance to hold the foe in check, while the rest followed, and until the dead and wounded could be placed on board the boats. Be- fore this difficult task was completed, heavy volleys were heard in the rear. It came from a large force of the savages stationed in Meloche's house and orchards. Grant pushed forward and drove them from the orchards and house at the point of the bayonet. From two Canadians found there, they learned that the savages had passed to the rear in great numbers, determined to occupy the houses and cut them off from the fort. Instant withdrawal became their only salvation, and the men slowly and in order commenced their painful retreat. They did not meet with severe opposition until they had reached a cluster of outhouses con- nected by strong fences. Behind these was concealed a strong force of Indians, who suffered the advance to pass without a shot, but when the centre and rear came directly abreast of their ambuscade, they raised a horrid yell, and poured forth a regular feu d'enfer. The decimated sol- diers were hardly saved here from a most disastrous panic. The river was on one side, and no escape but by the road. They broke ranks and crowded down upon each other like a flock of sheep, and had it not been for the presence and coolness of Dalzell, the confused retreat would have degenerated into a disgraceful rout. Like Braddock a few years before, he stormed, rebuked and beat back his men into ranks, and a random fire was at length returned. It was still night, and nothing could be seen of the foe. The con- stant flashes of their guns only served to indicate their whereabouts ; while a demoniac medley of yells and whoops and savage clamor drowned all voices. Into one house from which issued a fatal fire, Ma- jor Rogers and his Rangers burst their way, rushed in and expelled them. Captain Gray, while charging a large gang of redskins behind A Bloody Repulse. 145 some fences, fell mortally wounded. No sooner, however, did the men resume their retreat, before the savages were at them again, hanging on their rear, picking off stragglers, and scalping the dead and wounded. The eye of the brave Dalzell caught sight of a wounded sergeant rais- ing himself on his hands and gazing mutely after his retreating com- rades. He rushed back to the rescue, but was himself shot dead, and none to turn back for him. The loss of the harassed command would have been much greater had not Major Rogers occupied a strong house commanding the road, made a most obstinate defence, and thus covered the retreat. Meanwhile Captain Grant had made a stand in advance, and all as they came up, rallied around him, and made good the retreat with the exception of Rogers and his men, who, cooped up in the house spoken of, was besieged by full two hundred fierce and yelling savages. The batteaux which had gone down to the fort to discharge the wounded, at length returned to a point opposite this house and opened a fire from their swivels, thus enabling Rogers to reach the fort with no further loss. At about eight o'clock, after six hours of constant marching and fighting, the shattered detachment entered the fort once more, having lost full sixty of their number in killed and wounded. The loss to the enemy, led by Pontiac in person, was comparatively trifling. The ras- cals were greatly elated at their success, and sent runners far and near with the news, and fresh forces began to arrive daily. A Bloody Repulse — Siege Abandoned — Death of Pontiac. Well ! Time passed on, nothing of note happening in the conduct of the siege until the memorable night of September 4th. The schooner Gladwyn had been sent to Niagara with dispatches. She was now returning, having on board Horst, master, Jacobs, mate, a crew of ten Provincials and six Iroquois, supposed to be friendly. On entering the Detroit, the Indians asked to be put ashore, which request was foolishly granted, they no doubt revealing to Pontiac the weakness of the crew. At nightfall the wind fell and the ship was compelled to anchor about nine miles below the fort. It grew exceedingly dark and those aboard kept up an incessant watch. Meantime three hundred and fifty savages had stealthily glided down the current in their birch canoes and were close upon the vessel before seen. Only time to fire one cannon ere the hungry horde were beneath the bows and clambering up her sides with their knives clenched tight between their teeth. A close fire of musketry seemed to have no effect, so, dropping their guns, the crew made at them with spears and hatchets and attacked the 10 146 Our Western Border. boarders with such tremendous energy that in a few minutes they had killed twice their own number. Only for a moment, however, was the swarm of assailants checked. Horst, the master, was killed ; several of the crew were disabled, when Jacobs, as he saw the assailants clambering over the bulwarks, called out lustily to blow up the ship. This desperate order saved the vessel. Some Wyandots heard the command and told the rest, when the panic- stricken cr«wd leaped overboard and were seen diving and swimming away in every direction to escape the expected explosion. The schooner reached harbor without further molestation with six of her crew unhurt. The enemy lost nearly thirty. By the end of September, three of the tribes retired from the contest; but the Ottawas, led and inspired by the indomitable Pontiac, still con- tinued petty hostilities. By November, however, a fatal blow was given to the hopes of the great chief in a letter sent by M. Neyon, command- ant of Fort Chartres, the principal French post in the Illinois country. It assured Pontiac that France and England were now at peace and that hostilities which could lead to no good result, had better be abandoned. This message had great influence with the fickle Indians, and in rage and mortification Pontiac, with a number of his chiefs, left for the Maumee country in the hope of exciting the Indians there and renew- ing hostilities in the Spring. Shortly after, two friendly Wyandots gained secret admission to the fort and one of them unstringing his powder horn and taking off its false bottom, revealed a letter to Glad- wyn from Major Wilkins — who was then expected from Fort Niagara — conveying the unwelcome tidings that his command had been overtaken by a storm; many of the boats had been wrecked; seventy men had been lost and all the stores and ammunition had been destroyed and the expedition had returned to Niagara. Bad news enough ! rendering the prospect of the coming Winter still more dreary. The besiegers had now, however, almost all scattered to their wintering grounds. It was impossible for them to remain longer in a body without actual starvation. The confederated tribes had failed to take Detroit, Fort Pitt and Niagara, the three most important fortresses in their country, and there was general disaffection among them. The siege proper may be said to terminate at this point, although for six months after, until relieved by General Bradstreet's army, the fort was environed by hostile bands and cut off from all pro- visions, communications, &c. We can only simply refer to the decadence of Pontiac's power, and need not follow him in his broken fortunes. With soul unsubdued ; wiih undying hatred to tht English, and with one purpose so steadfas' Death of Pontiac. 147 and unfaltering as to almost reach the sublime, he continued to defy his foes and sought to confederate his friends. His exertions only grew the more daring as his fortunes became more desperate, but agencies were then at work all over the country, which at length convinced him that he had no longer a cause or a formidable following. He resolved, therefore, to accept the peace ; to nurse his vengeance and to bide his time. He went the next year to Oswego ; held a grand council with Sir William Johnson and the Iroquois sachems, and there made his last speech and sealed his submission to the English, renouncing forever the hopes which had so long nerved his ambitious soul. But the sacrifice almost broke his heart, and for the next two years he lived in such obscurity that history has no trace of him. In 1769 he went with some attendant chiefs to visit his French friends at Fort St. Louis. The famous Pierre Chouteau of that post vividly remembered to the very last day of his life Pontiac's appearance at that memorable visit. He was arrayed in the full uniform of a French officer — a special mark of favor from the Marquis de Montcalm — and moved about with great dignity. Hearing that a large number of Indians were assembled at Cahokia, nearly opposite, he, in spite of all dissuasion to the contrary, crossed the river to visit them. His fame at once surrounded him with attentions, and he was induced to drink deeply. When the council was over he strode to the adjacent woods, where he was heard to sing his medicine songs. An English trader named Williamson was then in the village, and it is said bribed a Kaskaskia Indian to kill the great chief — the implacable foe to all Britons. As Pontiac entered the forest this assassin stole upon his track, and, watching his opportunity, buried a tomahawk in his brain. This base and ignoble death caused great excitement among the western tribes, and most signally was it afterwards avenged, the Illi« nois tribes having been completely exterminated by the nations who almost worshipped Pontiac. The murdered chief lay where he fell un- ti] his old friend St. Ange sent to claim the body and buried it with warlike honors near his fort of St. Louis. In our account of Pontiac and the siege of Detroit, we have followed Parkman, whose monograph on Pontiac's Conspiracy is exceedingly full, exhaustive and reliable. He thus appropriately closes his notice of the great and imperial Ot- tawa chief: " Neither mound nor tablet mark the burial place of Pon- tiac. For a mausoleum, a city has risen above the great forest hero, and the race whom he hated with such burning rancor, trample with un- ceasing footsteps over his forgotten grave." t48 Our Western Border. Guyasutha's Attack on Fort Pitt and Repulse. Let us now go back and briefly narrate what occurred at Fort Pitt, one of the three frontier posts which escaped capture during Pontiac'g war. It stood at the junction of the Allegheny and JMonongahela, a little to one side of the ruins of the French Fort Duquesne, abandoned in 1758, and was a strong and formidable fortification, having five sides, the two towards the land of brick and the other three stockades. A broad moat, dry when the river was low, surrounded the fort. Nothing occurred to alarm until May 27th, when prowling bands of Indians scoured the country around, scalping stragglers, shooting or driving off stock, and murdering Indian traders. Then came news of the wholesale butchery of traders in the Ohio country. Among the Hurons the traders were so numerous and formidable that the Indians gained possession of them by stratagem, telling them that the surrounding tribes had risen in arms and were killing all the whites they met, and that it would be impossible for them (the Hurons) to protect their friends, the traders, unless the traders would consent, for appearance sake, to be made prisoners. In that case they should be set at liberty soon as the danger was over. The deluded traders gave up their arms, submitted to be bound, and were inhumanly slaughtered to a man. At Fort Pitt every preparation was made for a vigorous defence. The garrison consisted of three hundred and thirty soldiers, traders and hunters, commanded by the gallant Captain Ecuyer, and for many days were kept in constant alarm. The surrounding woods were full of prowling savages, though as yet no general assault was attempted. At length on June 2 2d a general fire was opened, which was replied to by a discharge of howitzers, the bursting shells appearing greatly to disconcert the assailants. Next morning a Delaware chief, Turtle's Heart by name, surrounded by other chiefs, boldly appeared before the fort and demanded its surrender, stating that six great nations had taken up the hatchet and had cut off all the frontier posts but that one. They must go back to the settlements or they would all be killed. Ecuyer replied, with a grim humor, which showed his confidence, that he could hold the fort against all the savages who should choose to combine against it ; that they were very well off there and meant to stay; that he would tell them in confidence, but hoped they would not mention to other Indians, that a great army of six thousand was coming to Fort Pitt ; another of three thousand had gone up the lakes, and a third had gone to the Virginia frontier, where, being joined by the Cherokees and Catawbas, (who were the most dreaded foes of the Ohio Indians,) they would come and destroy them. Therefore, they had better hide Ruse with a Stuffed Paddy. 149 01 they would get hurt. The chiefs were thus beaten at their own game, and taking fright at the three imaginary armies, disappeared and dispersed to attack weaker posts like Ligonier and Bedford. A few days later came in Ensign Price, followed by seven haggard, half-famished soldiers. They were the garrison of Le Boeuf on French Creek, attacked about same time as Presq' Isle and Venango. Price stated that the Indians had suddenly surrounded his block-house, showering bullets and fire-arrows against it, and had soon set it on fire. The yelling crowd then gathered in a half-circle about the gate, awaiting the moment when the inmates, stifled with flame and smoke, should rush out to their fate. But Price and his followers had hewn out a passage through the massive back wall of the block-house, and made good their escape to the surrounding woods, and thence to Fort Pitt. No man remained alive to tell how Fort Venango was taken, and it was not until long after that Sir William Johnson learned from a savage, who was present, that a large body of Senecas had gained entrance by a ruse, then closed the gates, fell upon the garrison, and butchered all but the commander, Lieutenant Gordon, whom they tortured to death over a slow fire for several successive nights. Meanwhile every possible effort was made at Fort Pitt for the re- newed attack which was daily expected. The rampart was repaired, a tine of palisades was erected, the barracks were made bullet-proof to protect the women and children, of whom there were sheltered there more than a hundred. It was not, however, till the 26th of July, that there appeared a delegation, headed by Shingiss and Turtle's Heart, bear- ing a message from Pontiac to the effect that he was coming against the English at the forks of the Ohio with a great army, and that being a hungry and a headstrong people, they would eat up everything that came in their way. To this gentle hint, Ecuyer promptly replied that he despised the Ottawas ; could and would hold his fort against all the Indians in the woods, and that if they came again about the fort, he would blow them to atoms with bombshells, and would fire bagfuls of bullets at them. Ruse with a Stuffed Paddy — Bouquet Comes to the Rescue. The savages at this retired in great disgust, and then organized a more serious attack. Crawling along and behind the steep banks of the riv- ers, they dug holes in them to conceal themselves and afford shelter from the garrison's fire. Snugly ensconced in these caverns, they kept up a severe and incessant hail on the fort, and often set it on fire with their arrows. It was dangerous to expose a head or any part of the body. They thus killed and wounded seven, including the brave and 150 Our Western Border. plucky Ecuyer himself. A soldier's letter from the fort, written a! this time, and describing the above facts, says: "Some of our fellows, however, were more than a match for them. One day 'Brown BUT procured some old clothes and straw, and stuffing a paddy he told us that night to lift it slowly above the stockade, and then let it fall quickly whenever it was fired at from the caves. He then took his station a few feet from it, and soon as his eye became accustomed to the dark- ness, bade us raise it up. We hoisted slowly, and a bullet at once passed through it, but instantly Bill, who could fire at a flash, put a ball through the Indian's head. We all laughed at the result, which made Bill tre- mendously angry. 'If you had held your jaw,' said he, 'the paddy might have served again, but now it's of no use, as the yellow-hides will smell a rat.' At last we got tired of being cooped up, but the follow- ing day chased the Indians from the banks of the river, where they most annoyed us. We built upon rollers a large flat-boat with high gunwales. The rowers were secured and port-holes bored all around; when finished and ready we rolled it into the Monongahela and anchored it so we could fire up the Allegheny. The Indians weie astonished, afraid to attack either boat or fort, as they would be between two fires. We raked them from the boat along the river banks. They set up the most diabolical yells I ever heard, retired up stream, but never again ventured so close in daylight." During all this time a terrible, scathing, ruthless border war was going on outside the forts along the whole line of frontier. Everywhere were experienced the same horrible cruelties — the sudden surprise, the massacre, the scalping, the burning. Many thousand people in Vir- ginia were driven from their homes. The people of Pennsylvania suf- fered quite as much. They left all and crowded into the interior towns for safety, living as best they could in huts or tents, or on the charities of friends. Lancaster had become a frontier town. The colonial gov- ernment was paralyzed by faction, and for a long time no adequate pro- tection was furnished. But this disgraceful state of things was about to end. Colonel Henry Bouquet, a Swiss, and one of the most able, resolute and energetic for- eign officers that ever served in this country, was coming to the aid ol Fort Pitt, and of the western frontier which that important post dom- inated. With every possible effort, he could only gather together about five hundred men, the shattered remains of two regiments of High- landers, enfeebled by West Indian exposure and disease. Sixty of them were so weak that they had to be conveyed in baggage wagons. When Bouquet reached Carlisle he found the whole country in a pitiable panic. The roads were crowded with flying families, and the towns Bouquet Comes to the Rescue. 151 and villages were encumbered with a smitten and fugitive population. Instead of receiving supplies, therefore, as expected, he had to dispense them. Eighteen precious days were lost in collecting stores and pro- viding transportation, and the little command commenced its long wilderness march of two hundred miles with the worst forebodings of the whole people. Just out of Carlisle they passed a forlorn and pitia- ble multitude of wretched refugees, who, unable to find shelter in the town, had encamped in the woods or adjacent fields, erecting huts af bark or branches and living on the charities of the town. Think of it! Crowds of poor men, women and children ; bereft of home, friends and the means of supporting life ; most of them haunted day and night with visions of the bloody knife and reeking scalps ! It was enough, foreigners as they were, to move the hearts of the passing soldiers to pity, and to nerve their arms to deeds of vengeance. We will see how good a record they made. The army pursued the route opened by Forbes on his expedi- tion against Fort Duquesne, and first relieving Forts Bedford and Ligonier, both beleaguered by Indians, struck gallantly forth into the pathless wilderness. Bouquet had hoped at Ligonier to get some late tidings from Fort Pitt, but no word had been heard from there for a month. The woods were alive with savages, and every messenger be- tween the two forts had been either killed or captured. Whether Fort Pitt stood or not, none knew — most probably not. The wagons were left behind, and everything needful packed on the horses, and, attended by the bleating of sheep and the lowing of cattle, the long, straggling train now wound its slow and toilsome way, like a huge serpent, through matted woods and across wild, dashing streams, dense walls of foliage on either side. Keen-eyed rangers scouted the woods on either flank. For nearly two days, in the sweltering heat of August, the troopi fagged on. Before them now lay the dangerous defile of Turtle Creek, commanded for several miles by steep, craggy hills. Fearing an am- buscade, it was Bouquet's design to pass these by night, sweeping through so rapidly and stealthily that the savages could concert no at- tack. To do this a whole afternoon's rest was to be enjoyed at Bu',0y Run, which by noon of the 5 th — after a wearisome march of sever? Veen miles — was declared to be only a half mile ahead. The jaded .v.ttle and tired soldiers were pressing forward with renewed alacrity when their fond anticipations suffered a rude and cruel interruption. 152 Our Western Border. Bouquet's Desperate Battle of Bushy Run. A startling volley of firearms suddenly broke the forest stillness, causing every man's heart to leap to his throat and every man's hands to clutch his trusty musket. The drum beat to arms, the sharp command rang out loud and clear, but before ranks were closed up, the savages were upon them with a horrible din and clamor. Bouquet promptly ordered two companies to charge the ambuscade. As the files of gleaming bayonets steadily advanced, the savages broke and fled ; but only for a moment. They soon gathered again, rushed in from all sides, and in great force occupied the heights, almost com- pletely surrounding Bouquet's little army, and pouring in a most galling and fatal fire. A general charge along the whole line dislodged the swarming Indians from the heights, but the savages returned again and again to the attack, pouring in a murderous hail of fire in front and on both flanks, and even attacking the convoy in the rear. The contest became hotter and hotter, the savages rushing to the attack with wonderful spirit and resolution, and the British holding their own with obstinacy and tenacity. It was life or death with them. Darkness alone ended the bloody battle. The brave little force was almost completely worn out. The day had been exceedingly sultry : they had fought for seven hours on empty stomachs ; they were nearly tormented to death by thirst, and had coolly and with desperate courage withstood the galling hail from a fiery circle of whooping demons. Right in the leafy wilderness where they had fought, on this hot, sul- try August night, without one drop of water to cool their parched tongues and fevered bodies, the poor Highlanders sank down to rest. Over sixty of their number, including several officers, had been killed or wounded. A dropping fire, and occasional yells and whoops were kept up by the Indians ; and in constant fear of a desperate night at- tack, the anxious hours were dragged through. At the very first streak of dawn a horrible din of yells and shrieks burst forth on all sides of them, and volley after volley of bullets came whistling among their thinned ranks. The combat raged fiercer and hotter than the day be- fore. The Indians seemed more desperate and reckless. • They would rush up to close quarters and fire from every bush and tree which could yield a cover. Although repulsed at every point, fresh Indians would take the places of the retreating, and the conflict raged more furiously is the day advanced. Yielding their ground when a charge was made, the crafty savages would vanish for a moment only to come out in a new spot. Desperate Battle of Bushy Run. 153 The troops maddened by thirst, fainting from heat, and worn out by Incessant charges which led to nothing, were almost completely ex- hausted. Their distress was so plainly visible, that the foe redoubled their horrid yells and fierce attacks, approaching so near as to deride and curse them in bad English. The whole camp was in utter con- fusion. The wounded and terror-stricken horses rushed frantically about, and the drivers concealed themselves or ran away, and all seemed lost. The defence became wavering and irresolute ; all hope had gone, and death or torture menaced the jaded but still brave survivors. If fcnything was to be done, then was just the time, and no moment to spare. Bouquet, happily, was equal to the occasion. In the very midst of despair he conceived and carried into immediate execution a masterly stratagem. He determined to get the Indians into one body, draw them into a trap, and then give them a furious bayonet charge, and so end the conflict. Two companies were ordered to fall back suddenly in the centre, while the troops on the flank should advance across the vacancy in the circle, as if to cover their retreat. Meanwhile another company of Light Infantry, with one of Grenadiers, were ordered to lie in ambush to support the first two companies on the feigned retreat. The stratagem took. These movements were mistaken for defeat and retreat. The yelling, screeching demons, believing that their time had come at last, leaped from cover on all sides and rushed headlong to the spot, pouring in a most galling fire. It seemed for a moment that nothing could withstand that impetuous advance and attack, but the two companies which had retreated, had, under cover of the dense woods and underbrush, made a rapid and secret detour, and now bursi out on each flank of the yelling, onrushing crowd of savages, and dis- charged a heavy volley right into their very midst. The Indians, though taken completely by surprise, faced about with great intrepidity, and boldly returned the fire, and essayed to recover ground. It was too late ! With a wild, fierce yell of rage, the Highlanders were upon them with the cold steel. A well-conducted bayonet charge an Indian has never and will never stand. The shock was irresistible, and they fled in a tumultuous mob. Now the two other companies, who had been crouched in ambush, awaiting the moment to strike, put in an appearance. As the fugitive throng, pressed back by the ad- vancing wall of bristling steel, passed directly across their front, they rose and poured in a destructive volley, which ended the whole matter. The four companies now uniting, soon changed flight to utter rout. No time was given them to reload ; many were shot or driven down, while the rest were scattered in remediless confusion throughout the woods. 154 Our Western. Border. While all this took place in one part of the circle, the remaining savages on the other sides first watched, then wavered, then lost heart, and finally betook themselves to headlong flight. And thus was this gallant little force, and its brave and skillful commander, saved from a terrible disaster — snatched from the very jaws of death. Forty In« dians, some of them their chief warriors, had been slain outright. Bouquet lost about fifty killed, and had about sixty wounded. The troops had so greatly suffered, and so many horses had been lost, that large amounts of stores had to be destroyed. The march was still difficult and tedious, though entirely unmolested, and it was not until four days after this bloody struggle that Bouquet arrived at Fort Pitt with his convoy, and thus raised the siege. It was Guyasutha's band of besieging Indians which were so crush- ingly defeated at Bushy Run. They had gone out with confidence against the little force, judging shrewdly that if it could be defeated as was Braddock's much larger command but a few years previous, Fort Pitt must finally be theirs. Now all was altered. There was no rally- ing fioiii that crushing overthrow, and the baffled Ohio savages retired sullenly to their homes beyond the Allegheny. Bouquet was most anxious to follow up his victory by marching at once into the heart of the enemy's country, and wringing from the hostile tribes a treaty, which would at once put an end to these scenes of rapine and slaughter, but his force was too small and the season too far advanced. He busied himself, therefore, during the Fall and Winter in restoring quiet along the frontier, and in gathering an adequate force for an early Spring campaign. It was not, however, till the next August that he was ready to move from Carlisle, his troops consisting of his old High- landers — such as were left of them — a thousand Pennsylvanians, and a small but invaluable corps of Virginia rangers. With this imposing force the plan was for him to march against the Shawnees, Delawares and Mingoes of Ohio, while Colonel Bradstreet should advance into the lake country, reduce the Ottawas, Chippewas and Wyandots, and relieve Detroit. During the Spring and Summer, Indian marauds and massacres had been renewed with such devastating effect that Pennsyb yania had at last been compelled, in compliance with the earnest de- mand of the whole frontier, to offer a high bounty for scalps — men, women and children. On September 13th Bouquet arrived with his army at Fort Pitt. Various delegations from the Ohio tribes, who had all retired beyond the Muskingum, endeavored on various pretexts to delay the expedition until too late in the season, but Bouquet was perfectly convinced that the only possible peace was to be secured by a show of rigor and Desperate Battle of Bushy Run. 155 power. He could neither be wheedled or bullied into any fatal delay. And so on the 3d of October the army crossed the Allegheny, and de- filing into the Indian trail, struck boldly out into the trackless wilder- ness. It was accompanied by long trains of pack horses and immense droves of cattle, and was preceded by three scouting parties of rangers, one of which kept the trail while the other two moved on the flanks. This whole expedition, together with the various incidents attending it* ss replete with a romantic interest, but we have only room for results. r\ 1 Boone marking out his own grave. — Seepage *8f. 156 Our Western Border. Bouquet in the Heart of the Indian Country. The course lay along the Ohio to Big Beaver and thence to Yellow and Sandy Creeks directly to the Tuscarawas, a continuation of the Muskingum, which was reached on the tenth day. The march had been conducted in silence entirely through the vast primeval forest, and had been met with no obstructions whatever. They were now approaching the homes, hitherto sacred and secure, of the tribes which had been causing all the late mischief. News of their coming and of the imposing size of the army, as well as the skill and boldness of its commander, had long preceded them, and a great fear fell upon the contumacious tri bes. Their hearts were now inclined to peace. Fleet runners went to and fro between the different towns. Grand councils were held ; eloquent harangues were made; the young and ardent were overruled by the older and more prudent warriors, and the result was a large delegation of chiefs to sue for peace and endeavor to stay Bouquet's further progress. A large bower was built near the camp for the conference. A grand parade was made that the chiefs might be duly impressed, and the negotiations commenced. The great chiefs Guyasutha, Turtle's Heart and Custaloga headed the deputation. Painted and plumed in all their savage pomp, they walked with majesty, not deigning to cast a glance at the grand military display around them. They seated themselves with stern, impassive looks, and an air of sullen dignity, while their black and sombre brows betrayed the hatred still rankling in their hearts. The pipe went round in solemn silence, and then from their pouches were drawn their strings of wampum, without which no conference can be conducted. The chiefs as usual laid the whole blame of the war on their young men, whom they said they could not control, and upon the nations who lived to the west of them. Bouquet, well understanding the Indian character and how best to treat them, now dismissed them, promising an answer the next day. That day being very wet and rainy, however, he made no reply until the next, when the council being all duly assembled, Bouquet made a bold, haughty, uncompromising harangue, asserting that their excuses for the late marauds were weak and frivolous ; reciting their numerous acts of perfidy; declaring that he would no longer be imposed upon; that he had brought with him the relations of the people they had massacred and made captive, and that he could scarce restrain them from taking revenge. He then gave them twelve days to deliver to him every person with white blood, in their hands — men, women and child- ren — and to furnish said prisoners with horses, clott ing and provision? Bouquet in the Heart of the Indian Country. 157 to carry them back to Fort Pitt. These were the only terms on which he would make peace. The chiefs, finding Bouquet in dead earnest, were prompt to comply. His bold, resolute speech and mien made a pro- found impression on the haughty circle of swarthy listeners. Their stubborn pride was subdued, their arrogance abated, and the Delawares at once gave up eighteen prisoners then with them, and eighty-three small sticks denoting the number of other captives in their possession, whom they pledged themselves to bring in right away. None of the Shawnee chiefs took part in this conference, but their deputy also promised, with sullen dejection, that his nation would com- ply with the terms. But Bouquet wisely determined to follow up his advantage and to march deeper into their country, shrewdly judging that the presence of his powerful force within easy striking distance of their towns, wor.M be the best possible security for the prompt fulfill- ment of these promises; so, for the next three days, he marched down to the forks of the Muskingum, where he made a strong fortified camp, erecting redoubts, storehouses and other buildings for the reception of the expected captives, who were to be taken charge of by officers and matrons duly selected. The camp soon had the appearance of a little town, the order and regularity of which struck the onlooking and over- awed Indians with astonishment. The constant sound of the axe, the lowing of cattle, the well-drilled army so rapidly located within the very heart of their own territory, moved them to such unusual activity, that on the 27th, messengers arrived from the Delaware king, Custaloga, that he was on lis way with his prisoners, and a message of like effect from the Shawnees. About two weeks were spent at this camp, exchanging messages with relation to the prisoners, who were now being daily brought into camp. So strict was Bouquet in having all produced, that when Kings Beaver and Custaloga had brought in all but twelve, promising to bring them, too, in a few days, he refused to shake hands with or have a word to say to them until every single captive was in. By the 9th of November there had been delivered of Virginians thir- ty-two males and fifty-eight females and children, and of Pennsylva- nians forty-nine males and sixty-seven females and children, a total of two hundred and six. A hundred more were in the hands of the Shaw- nees, which, on account of those owning them having gone on a distant expedition, could not then be delivered, but they were solemnly prom- ised early in the Spring at Fort Pitt. The Shawnees were ever a fierce, warlike and jealous tribe, and when the "pale-face" army entered their country, reports had reached them that their tribe was to be completely extirpated, upon which they had fully resolved to kill all their prison ers, and then to march out and give battle, and fight to the bitter end 153 Our Western Border. Happily for them and the poor captives, they recei /ed a friendly mes- sage from Bouquet, sent as they were preparing to execute their horrible purpose, to the effect that peace would be made with them on the same terms as with the Delawares, if they would send in all of white blood with them. Again, while actually on the way, they somehow heard that one oi Bouquet's soldiers had been secretly killed near camp, and that some of their tribe were cHrged with the bloody deed. This decided them anew to m \ke an heroic -esistance, and collecting all their captives in- a field, they were about to tomahawk them entire, when a runner fortunately arrived from Bouquet, who, on hearing of the report current among them, ridiculed it as absurd, and urged them to continue their journey. A final conference was now held, and peace granted, first to the Sen- ecas and Delawares, and afterwards to the Shawnees, who had all along acted with such a sullen and disdainful haughtiness that Bouquet was fearful lest they should yet play him false. The biting blasts of Winter, however, commenced to prevail; the foliage had all fallen from the trees and every sign warned him tha*- ^ny .tonger delay would be dangerous. He was, therefore, obliged to *est satisfied with such prisoners as they saw fit to bring ; exacting renewed promises that the rest should shortly be delivered at Fort Pitt, and compelling them to deliver to him sis hostages for the faithful performance of all their pledges. Touching Scenes on the Delivery of the Captives. And now we enter upon the description of touching and pathetic scenes which have no parallel in history, and to which no pen could do justice. If the exhibitions of human tenderness and affection daily presented in that sylvan camp were not so well attested, they would seem actually incredible. They reflect as much honor on the Indians as on the whites — yes, far more ! for these captives belonged to and were taken from a race they hated ; whom they were taught to look upon as grasp- ing, usurping and vindictive enemies. From the graphic account of Hutchins, the geographer, who accompanied the expedition, we quote as follows: "It was a most affecting spectacle to see fathers and mothers recognizing and clasping their once lost babes; husbands hanging around the necks of their newly-recovered wives; sisters and brothers unex- pectedly meeting together after long separations, scarce able to speak the same language, or, for some time, to be sure they were children of the same parents. In all these interviews joy and rapture inexpressible were seen, while feelings of a very different nature were painted in the looks of others ; flying from place to place in eager inquiries after rela- tives not found ; trembling to receive an answer to their questions ; dis- Scenes on the Delivery of the Captives. 159 tracted with doubts, hopes and fears on obtaining no account of those they sought for, or stiffened into living monuments of horror and woe on learning their unhappy fate. " The Indians, too, as if wholly forgetting their usual savageness, bore a capital part in heightening this most affecting scene. They delivered up their beloved captives with the utmost reluctance ; shed torrents of tears over them, recommending them to the care and pro- tection of the commanding officer. Their regard to them continued all the time they remained in camp. They visited them from day to day ; and brought them what corn, skins, horses and other matters they had bestowed on them, while in their families ; accompanied with other presents and all the marks of most sincere and tender affection. " Nay, they did not stop here, but, when the army marched, some of the Indians solicited and obtained leave to accompany their captives all the way to Fort Pitt, and employed themselves in hunting and bringing provisions for them on the road. A young Mingo carried this still fur- ther and gave an instance of love which would make a figure even in romance. A young woman from Virginia was among the captives, to whom he had formed so strong an attachment as to call her his wife. Against all remonstrances of the imminent danger to which he exposed himself by approaching the frontier, he persisted in following her, at the risk of being killed by the surviving relatives of many unfortunate persons who had been captured or scalped by those of his nation. " These qualities in savages challenge our just esteem. Cruel and unmerciful as they are by habit and long example in war, yet whenever they come to give way to the native dictates of humanity, they exercise virtues which Christians need not blush to imitate. When they once determine to give life, they give everything with it. No woman thus saved is preserved for base motives, or need fear the violation of her honor. No child is otherwise treated by the persons adopting it than the children of their own body. Every captive whom their affection, their caprice, or whatever else, leads them to save, fares alike with themselves. "Among the captives a woman was brought into the camp with a babe about three months old, at the breast. One of the Virginia vol- unteers soon knew her to be his wife, who had been taken by the Indians about six months before. She was immediately delivered to her overjoyed husband. He flew with her to his tent and clothed her and his child in proper apparel. But their joy, after the first transports, was soon damped by the reflection that another dear child of about two years old, captured with the mother and separated from her, was still missing, although many children had been brought in. 160 Our Western Border. " A few days after a number of other prisoners were brought to the camp, among whom were several more children. The woman was sent for and one, supposed to be hers, was produced to her. At first sight she was uncertain, but viewing the child with great earnestness, she soon recollected its features and was so overcome with joy that literally for- getting her sucking child, she dropped it from her arms and catching up the new-found child in an ecstacy, pressed it to her breast and bursting into tears carried it off, unable to speak for joy. The father catching up the babe she had let fall, followed her in no less transport and affec- tion. " Among the children who had been carried off young and had long lived with the Indians, it is not to be expected that any marks of joy would appear on being restored to their parents or relatives. Having been accustomed to look upon the Indians as the only connections they had; having been tenderly treated by them and sneaking their lan- guage, it is no wonder they parted from the savages with tears. But it must not be denied that there were even some grown persons who showed an unwillingness to return. The Shawnees were obliged to bind several of their prisoners and force them along to the camp ; and some women who had been delivered up, afterwards found means to escape and run back to the Indian towns. Some, who could not make their escape, clung to their savage acquaintances at parting, and continued many days in bitter lamentations, even refusing sustenance." All matters being now satisfactorily adjusted, the wilderness camp was broken up ; the refreshed army commenced their backward march, and in ten days was back at Fort Pitt. Colonel Bouquet soon returned -jo Philadelphia, receiving, wherever he went, every possible mark of gratitude, but more especially from the overjoyed relatives of the many captives whom he had so happily restored to their families. The Assem- blies of Pennsylvania and Virginia voted him addresses, while the home government promoted him to the rank of Brigadier General, placing him in command of the southern department. He did not long survive, however, to enjoy his honors, dying three years after at Pensacola. We need only add, that the Shawnees faithfully redeemed their pledges. Ten chiefs, attended by about fifty warriors, came in with over a hundred captives to Fort Pitt the next May. In the grand council which ensued they said : " These captives have all been united to us by adoption, and although we deliver them up to you, we will always look upon them as our relations. We have taken as much care of them as if they were our own flesh and blood. They have become strange to your customs and manners, and we request you to use them kindly and tenderly." Desperate Battle of Point Pleasant. 161 THE DESPERATE BATTLE OF POINT PLEASANT. Peace and quiet reigned for a time along the troubled and harassed western border. Now may be said to have commenced the explorations of the Great West by daring and adventurous hunters, and we approach a new and a very interesting era in American history. The glowing reports brought back by Smith, Finley, Boone, Stewart and their com- panions, as well as many Indian traders, excited a wide-spread longing among the young men of the old settlements, to migrate to the West. It was pictured to their fancies as a new Eldorado — a magnificent region, abounding in vast forests, clear streams teeming with fish and in every species of fragrant flowers. It was a boundless land; with soft and genial clime ; with soil of wondrous freshness, and the luxuriant woods stocked with game in every variety, from the beaver to the buffalo. The savages who either inhabited or roamed over this "hunter's paradise," seeing the land sold from under their feet by the Iroquois of New York, and witnessing with a fierce anger and jealousy this new tide of hardy and daring pioneers, naturally began to grow restless and hostile. A deep and bitter feeling of hate and rancor was evidently growing in their proud and haughty bosoms. But still remembering British power and past punishment, they managed to keep the peace until 1774, when a canoe filled with friendly redmen was attacked below Wheeling by Michael Cresap, and another attack was made by the same party upon an Indian camp at the mouth of Captina Creek, twenty miles below. These were clearly the exciting causes of what is known in history as "Dunmore's war of 1774." It is true, however, that the magazine was fully charged before, only needing the match to explode it. These bloody deeds were immediately followed by a horrid and entirely un- provoked massacre of Indians at the mouth of Yellow Creek, in which were killed some of the relatives of Lpgan, the famous Mingo Chief. This cowardly and treacherous butchery was perpetrated by thirty-two men led by Daniel Greathouse, and reflects the deepest dishonor upon all concerned. The pretext to the attack was, that as the Captina mas- sacre shortly before would undoubtedly provoke an Indian war, it was better to take the initiative. Opposite the mouth of Yellow Creek was the house of a man named Baker. Greathouse's party being gathered there, saw the encampment of an Indian hunting party across the Ohio, and an ambush being laid, Greathouse crossed the river under the mask 11 162 Our Western Border. of friendship to ascertain the number. The presence of women and children clearly proved to him that it was no war party. While there a squaw urged him to retire at once as the Indians were drinking heavily, and, being excited by the murders of their people below Wheeling, might do him mischief. Greathouse reported to his band that the savages were too strong for an open assault, but urged Baker to give all the Indians who came over as much rum as they could drink. A canoe with six warriors, two squaws and a little girl soon crossed, and the men becoming hopelessly drunk, were set upon by a few of Greathouse's men — the rest protesting against the atrocious and perfidious murder — and all were cruelly butchered but the girl. The Indians in camp, hearing the firing on the other side, sent a canoe paddled by two men, to ascertain the cause. These, too, were shot down like dogs, as soon as they made the beach. A larger canoe was then manned by a number of savages and sent across. They were received by a fatal volley from an ambush on shore, and the survivors compelled to return. Shots were then exchanged across the Ohio, but without further damage. These two massacres embraced the whole of Logan's family. A prodigious excitement prevailed along the Virginia frontier after these wanton and unholy deeds, and the scattered settlers, knowing full well that the savages would retaliate, lost no time in erecting forts and stations for their protection. Many of these were for the next twenty years famous as the scenes of many a desperate struggle. Expresses were also dispatched to Governor Dunmore, at Williamsburg, to send out immediate aid. Measures were at once adopted by the House of Burgesses for organizing and equipping an adequate force. Boone and Stoner were ordered to bring in the surveyors, out in various directions, which task was promptly and successfully executed; but the unfortunate traders then busy in the Indian country, peddling their wares from town to town, could not be so easily warned or rescued. Some of these fell the first victims to the redman's vengeance. One near the town of White Eyes, the great Peace Chief of the Delawares, was literally hacked to pieces, and the fragments of Jiis body hung up on the bushes. The kindly chief, however — of whom we shall hear much hereafter— gath- ered them together and buried them ; they were disinterred and again scattered by the infuriated perpetrators, but the kindness of the chief was as persistent as their hatred, and again he collected the disjecta membra and hid them in a secret place. It being thought best to assume the offensive, a force of four hun- dred was hastily gathered at Fort Henry, (now Wheeling, West Va.,) and, led by Colonel Angus McDonald and piloted by Jonathan Zane, Desperate Battle of Point Pleasant. 163 a hurried expedition was made against Wappatomica, on the Mus- kingum, situated near what is now Coshockton, Ohio. The march was a success. The savages having been frustrated in an expected sur- prise of the invaders, deserted their town, sued for peace, and delivered up five chiefs as hostages. It being found, however, that the Indians meant war, and were only desirous of gaining time until their forces should be gathered, the Virginians proceeded to destroy their towns and crops, and retreated, carrying three chiefs to Fort Henry. But this only incensed the savages. The storm that had been aroused was too violent and wide-spread to be easily allayed. Nothing but blood could wipe out their wrongs. While the other Indians were hesitating on their course, and the great Cornstalk was exerting himself to placate his angry followers, Logan, who, by the wanton murder of his rela- tives, had been converted into a bitter foe of the whites, suddenly swooped down like a whirlwind upon the Monongahela settlements and carried away nineteen scalps. But Logan, although a much-wronged man, was also a kind man. At this very attack, a man named Robinson was making off for the woods when he heard behind him a voice crying out in very good English, "Stop! I won't hurt you!" "Yes, you will," replied Robinson. "No, I won't, but if you don't stop, by I'll shoot you !" Robinson still forged ahead, but while looking over his shoulder to watch the expected tomahawk, he stumbled over a log, fell, arid was immediately clutched by his pursuer, who told him he must quietly go captive, and assured him he should not be hurt. It was Logan ! He continued his kindness, for when Robinson was afterwards compelled to run the gauntlet, the Mingo chief so instructed him that he escaped without injury. He was afterwards tied to a stake to be burned, but the chief ran and spoke strongly for some time in behalf of the captive. Three times was the intended victim tied to the stake, but at length Logan's masterly eloquence prevailed, and he was released, taken to Logan's own lodge, and some time after returned home. Rob- inson afterwards used to say that Logan's countenance, when speaking, was the most striking and impressive that he ever beheld. Logan made as strenuous efforts afterwards, as we shall see, to procure the release of the famous Simon Kenton. Predatory bands of Indians now pushed forward in various directions, and the border suffered greatly from marauds and attacks, from June until September. In the meantime two formidable bodies of troops were slowly gathering to beat back these desolating savage gangs and restore quiet to the frontier. The one from South and West Virginia was to be led by General Andrew Lewis : the other from North and 164 Our Western Border. East Virginia to be under command of Governor Dunmore himself, and which, descending the Ohio from Fort Pitt, was to meed Lewis' army at the mouth of the Kanawha. Lewis, with eleven hundred men, reached the point agreed upon on the 6th of October, but, Dunmore not having arrived, he sent scouts — both Simon Girty and Simon Kenton were acting as scouts in this campaign, a fact, as will be here- after shown, to which Kenton owed his life — and soon received dis patches to the effect that the plan of campaign was altered ; that he (Dunmore) would proceed directly against the Shawnee towns on the Scioto, and Lewis was ordered to join him before those towns. This could not be done, however, without a desperate struggle — one of the most severe and well-fought battles that has ever occurred be- tween the red and white races. The next morning, October ioth, '74, General Lewis was preparing to move as directed, when a scout reported that he and a companion had been out hunting, and had discovered a large body of Indians just rising from their encampment, which covered about four acres, and that while his partner had been shot, he had made good his escape. As this meant that the Indians were strong enough to cross the Ohio to take the offensive, all was, of course, immediate sur- prise and confusion, but General Lewis, calm as was the morning itself, lighted his pipe with the greatest coolness and ordered out the regiment under Colonel Chas. Lewis, his brother, and that of Colonel Fleming, to reconnoitre the ground. General Andrew Lewis — The Battle Rages — The Savages Retreat. Before battle is joined, however, let us say something of the com- mander of this gallant army, which contained the very flower of Vir- ginia, and embraced many names afterwards highly distinguished. Gen- eral Andrew Lewis had served as Captain of the Virginia Rangers at the disastrous battle of Braddocks Fields, and had five brothers in his com- pany. He afterwards served as Major in Washington's regiment, Forbes' army, and was with Major Grant in that officer's foolish bravado before Fort Duquesne, having the misfortune to be wounded and taken pris- oner. McClung asserts — with what authority we are ignorant — that while he and Grant were on parole at the French fort, a- quarrel broke out between them, much to the amusement of the French. Grant, in his dispatches captured by the Indians, had made Lewis the scapegoat for his own defeat, whereas, in truth, the only execution that was done was effected by the Virginia troops. On leaving the fort, Lewis went in search of Grant, and, drawing his sword, directed his former com- mander to defend himself on the spot. Grant contemptuously refused General Andrew Lewis. 165 to comply, upon which Lewis cursed him for a liar and a coward, and, in the presence of two French officers, actually spat in his face. General Lewis' person considerably exceeded six feet in height, as did, indeed, that of most every man under him. He had a splendid physique, and was of a very imposing appearance. His countenance was stern and manly, expressive of that daring and energy which ever distinguished him. His manners were cold, plain and unbending, and his conversation short, pithy and to the point. At the general treaty with the tribes in '6$, General Lewis was the "observed of all ob- servers," and his majestic military appearance not only attracted atten- tion but inspired awe. The Governor of New York then declared that he "looked like the genius of the forest, and that the earth seemed to tremble beneath his footsteps." The General had a brother and three sons — two of them privates — in his division. Colonel Charles Lewis now instantly advanced, and was soon engaged with the enemy, composed of Shawnees, Mingoes, Delawares and Tawas, about a thousand strong, led by the celebrated Shawnee chiei, Cornstalk, and assisted by his son, Elenipsico, by Logan, Red Eagle and other prominent chiefs. Colonel Fleming, who advanced along the Ohio, also found the enemy close by, and a very hot and fierce struggle at once ensued. Colonel Charles Lewis, being in full uniform, and a conspicuous mark for the enemy, was soon mortally wounded, as was also, soon after, Colonel Fleming. The troops were much discouraged, and being pressed by the savages with unusual vigor, were compelled to beat a retreat. At this critical moment, General Lewis ordered up Field's regiment, which, meeting the retiring troops, rallied them again, and not only restored the fortunes of the day, but compelled the In- dians, in their turn, to retreat to a very strong position — one that was not easily assailable. The contest now became more desperate than ever and was still stub- bornly maintained by both parties — who were about equal in numbers— with consummate skill, valor and energy. The savages, sure of success nmen they previously beheld the troops give way, fought with a vigor and steadiness never surpassed in all the annals of savage warfare. Neither party would retreat ; neither could advance. The noise of the terrible conflict was tremendous. The cheers of the whites and the yells of the infuriated savages, together with the incessant discharge of firearms, kept up an appalling din. The love for scalps on the part of the redskins caused them to make many daring dashes and imprudent exposures, and three of them were successively s:iot down over one body, m an attempt to secure the trophy they so much coveted. The action was fought on the narrow point of land between the Ohio 166 Our Western Border. and Kanawha. As the repeated efforts of the whites to carry the enemy's position grew more desperate, the Indian line began to waver) and at several points, to give way. The deep voice of Cornstalk could now be distinctly heard above all the din of battle as he urged his dusky crew to the conflict and shouted: "Be strong! Be strong!" He even buried his keen tomahawk in the brain of one of his faltering warriors and indignantly shaming the rest, made good again the line of battle. Colonel Field fell about this time, and, at length, General Lewis, alarmed at the extent of his losses and the obstinacy of his swarthy foe, made an effort to turn the enemy's flank by way of Crooked Creek, with three of his best companies. This timely manoeuvre was partially successful. The enemy's fire began to slacken, and at last they began to retire slowly and in such order that they laid ambushes for all the whites who pressed on them too fast. So the contest lasted till dark, when Cornstalk effected a secure retreat. The Virginian loss was severe, embracing three Provincial officers and some sixty men killed and ninety-six wounded. The enemy's loss was also heavy, but its extent could never be exactly ascertained, as during the very hottest of the action they were seen busily engaged throwing the dead into the Ohio and carrying off their wounded. Thirty-three dusky bodies were found on the field the next day. During the» night they crossed the Ohio and made off for the Scioto towns. This battle was the very last that took place under British dominion. It was one of the longest and most obstinately-contested struggles that ever occurred on the western frontier, lasting from sunrise to sunset. The line of battle was at times a mile long, and at points the contest- ants came to close quarters with tomahawks and clubbed muskets. The Indian army comprised the pick of the Ohio tribes. Cornstalk's tower- ing form could frequently be seen gliding from point to point, rebuking the fearful and reassuring the wavering. It is asserted that on the even- ing preceding the battle, this distinguished chief, fearing the issue of the approaching struggle, openly proposed in council to go in person to the camp of General Lewis and negotiate an honorable peace. His voice, however, was overruled. "Then," said he, "since you are resolved to fight you shall fight. It is likely we will have hard work to-morrow, but if any warrior shall attempt to run away, I will kill him with my own hand." Subsequent Atrocious Murder of Cornstalk and his Son. We may as well here follow the brave Cornstalk until he met his sad fate in the year '77. It is not a little singular that all the prominent Atrocious Murder of Cornstalk and his Son. 167 chiefs who commanded in this battle were murdered, and two of them close by the battlefield. Not very long after this action, Captain Arbuckle commanded the fort erected at Point Pleasant, and the next year, when the revolutionary struggle had commenced, and British agents were exerting themselves to excite the Indians to take sides against the patriots, Cornstalk and Red Hawk — not showing the un- quenchable hatred which always animated the Shawnees against the Americans — visited Arbuckle and declared that the Shawnees were de- termined on war, and he supposed that he and his would be reluctantly compelled to drift with the stream. Arbuckle on hearing this, resolved to detain the two chiefs, hoping thereby to keep their tribe neutral. One day Elenipsico, Cornstalk's son, crossed the Ohio on a visit to his father. He is said to have been a very noble and promising young chief. The very next morning two hunters from the fort were ambushed in the woods and one of them, Gillmore by name, was killed. The soldiers of the company to which Gillmore belonged crossed the Kan- awha and brought back his mutilated remains. The canoe had scarce touched the shore when Captain Hall's men cried out " Let us kill the Indians in the fort." Captain Hall placed himself at their head, and they all marched up the bank, maddened with rage and carrying their loaded firelocks in their hands. Colonel Stewart and Captain Arbuckle exerted themselves in vain to prevent the bloody, treacherous deed, but exasperated to fury by the spectacle of Gillmore's scalped head, they rushed into the fort, threatening instant death to all who dared oppose them. The interpreter's wife, who had been a captive among the Indians and felt an affection for the visitors, ran forward and told them that Hall's soldiers were coming to take their lives because they believed that the Indians who killed Gillmore had come with Cornstalk's son the preceding day. This the young chief solemnly denied, averring that he knew nothing whatever of them. His father, perceiving that Elenip- sico was in great agitation, encouraged him, and urged him to cast aside all fear. "If, my son," said he, " the Great Spirit has seen fit that we should die together, it is His will, and you ought to die like a man." As the soldiers approached the door, Cornstalk rose, and with great dig- nity advanced to meet them, receiving eight or nine balls in his body and sank to instant death without a groan. His son remained still and passive and was next shot dead in the seat he occupied, Red Hawk made an attempt to escape by the chimney but was dragged out and dispatched. The remaining Shawnee was shamefully mangled and the horrid tragedy was over. 1G8 Our Western Boeder. The Murder of the Great Chief Bald Eagle. We might have mentioned one other cause, somewhat similar to the one just related, as contributing to the Indian rancor against the " Long Knives," as they called the Virginians. The wanton murder, some little time before, of Bald Eagle, an aged Delaware sachem, was pecu- liarly irritating to that warlike nation. He spoke the English language with great fluency, and being remarkably fond of tobacco, sweetmeats, and rum, all of which were generally offered to him in profusion in the settlements, he was a frequent visitor at the fort erected at the mouth of the Kanawha, and familiarly acquainted even with the children. He usually ascended the river alone, in a bark canoe, and, from the fre- quency and harmlessness of his visits, his appearance never excited the least alarm. A white man, who had suffered much from the Indians, encountered the old chief one evening alone upon the river, returning peaceably from one of his usual visits. A conference ensued, which terminated in a quarrel, and the old man was killed upon the spot. The murderer, having scalped his victim, fixed the dead body in the usual sitting posture in the stern of the boat, replaced the pipe in his mouth, and, launching the canoe again upon the river, permitted it to float down with its burden undisturbed. Many settlers beheld it descending in this manner, but, from the upright posture of the old man, they supposed that he was only returning, as usual, from a visit to the whites. The truth, however, was quickly discovered, and inflamed his tribe with the most ungovernable rage. Vengeance was vowed for the outrage, and amply exacted. After the battle of Point Pleasant, General Lewis crossed the Ohio and marched rapidly towards the Scioto to meet Governor Dunmore, according to orders. At the Piskaway Plains, and within easy striking distance of old Chillicothe and the chief Indian towns, he was met by a message from Dunmore, who was encamped not far distant, ordering him to stop, as he, Dunmore, was about to negotiate a peace with the Indians. Indignant at the manner in which he had been treated, and finding his rear threatened by a large force of savages, Lewis kept on, disregarding likewise a second dispatch, until he had approached within a few miles of old Chillicothe. The Governor now became uneasy, and, accompanied by White Eyes, the celebrated Delaware chief, he peremp- torily ordered Lewis to halt. It is asserted that at this untimely arrest of their march, and when they were in position and in condition to inflict condign punishment and to conquer a lasting peace, it was with difficulty that the Virginian Murder of the Great Chief Bald Eagle. 1G9 commander could restrain his men from killing Dunmore, who was deemed a traitor to his country. Lewis was now ordered to return forth- with to Point Pleasant and disband, while Dunmore returned to Camp Charlotte and concluded a treaty. The chief orator on the Indian side was Cornstalk, who openly charged the whites with being the sole cause of the war, enumerating the many provocations received by them, and dwelling at length and with force upon the murder of Logan's family. His clear, bugle voice could be distinctly heard over the whole camp of twelve acres. He had ever been the friend of the whites, and after his late defeat by General Lewis, he led his broken and scattered bands to their towns, and immediately convened a council to determine upon what was next to be done. The stern old chief arose, and glancing around with eagle eye upon the assembly of chiefs and oldest warriors, he put the question: "What shall we do now? The 'Long Knives' are coming upon us by two routes. Shall we turn out and fight them?" No response being made, he continued: "Shall we kill all our squaws and children, and then fight until we are all killed ourselves?" Still the congregated warriors were silent, and, after a moment's hesitation, Cornstalk struck his tomahawk into the war post, and with compressed lips and flashing eye, gazed around the assembled throng and said, with great emphasis: "Since you are not inclined to fight, I will go and make peace;" and thus it was he met Dunmore before the arrival of General Lewis. This ended the campaign, and a temporary and hollow peace was patched up. Next year came the Revolution. 170 Our Western Border. SKETCH OF LOGAN, THE FAMED MINGO CHIEF. Mislike me not for my complexion The shadowed livery of the burnished sun. — Skakspear*. There was one chief, however, whose face was not seen and whose voice was not heard at the camp of Lord Dunmore, and that was Logan , the far-famed Mingo (which means Iroquois) Chief. He, however, if said to have sent the following speech, which has been published over the whole world, and has ever since its publication formed a staple model of oration for aspiring youth : "I appeal to any white man to say, if ever he entered Logan's cabin hungry, and he gave him not meat; if ever he came cold and naked, and he clothed him not. During the course of the last long and bloody war, Logan remained idle in his cabin, an advocate for peace. Such was my love for the whites that my countrymen pointed as they passed, and said, ' Logan is the friend of white men.* I had even thought to have lived with you, but for the injuries of one man, Colonel Cresap, who last Spring, in cold blood and unprovoked, murdered all the relations of Logan, not even sparing my women and children. There runs not a drop of mv blood in the veins of any living creature. This called on me for re- venge. I have sought it; I have killed many; I have fully glutted my vengeance. For my country I rejoice at the beams of peace. But do not harbor a thought that mine is the joy of fear. Logan never felt fear ! He will not turn on his heel to save his life. Who is there to mourn for Logan? Not one." Jefferson published this speech in 1784, employing the following com- plimentary language concerning it : "I may challenge the whole ora- tions of Demosthenes and Cicero to pronounce a single passage superior to the speech of Logan, a Mingo Chief, to Lord Dunmore." The speech immediately became immensely popular ; was copied into various tongues, and was published into books of oratory for the instruction of youth. In 1797, Luther Martin, a very able Maryland lawyer, and a son-in-law of Michael Cresap, addressed a long letter to a public d^- claimer — who had been regularly reciting this alleged speech of Logan— in which he asserted, in effect, that the whole letter was an entire fic- tion ; that neither it nor anything like it had been spoken, written or delivered by Logan; that its sole author was Jefferson himself; that the Logan, the Famed Mingo Chief. 171 charge contained in the speech was a vile calumny, and that in support of these assertions he was ready to enter the lists with Jefferson. Jefferson, finding his veracity and integrity thus openly and boldly impeached, addressed letters to various persons with the purpose of es- tablishing the genuineness of the alleged speech of Logan. He as- serted, however, that he first heard of the speech in the circle of Lord Dunmore, and the officers who had been at Camp Charlotte with him ; that it had already then been long current and published ; that for over twenty years, it had passed uncontradicted, and that if it were not true, he, as well as multitudes of others, were innocently deceived, and that as for doing an injury to Captain Cresap, he was entirely guiltless, hav- no knowledge of him nor any desire to do him any injustice. We need not go into the details of this long controversy, which ex- cited a great deal of noise and feeling at the time, and which have been quoted at length by many historians. The information which Jeffer- son elicited from those in a position to be more fully acquainted with the matter, was exceedingly full and precise, and we think most clearly established the following facts : that a speech called Logan's was un- doubtedly delivered to Lord Dunmore in '74, at Camp Charlotte, near old Chillicothe ; that Mr. Jefferson was honest in the whole matter, and fully believed that Logan had written or delivered the speech which he published as his ; that Captain Cresap, and not Colonel Cresap, as he is styled in the speech, was concerned in the wanton killing of Indians about that time, but that said Cresap was in no manner concerned, as the speech makes Logan say, in the massacre at Yellow Creek, where Logan's relatives were slaughtered. Colonel Ebenezer Zane, the founder of Wheeling and a gentleman of indisputable veracity, stated that he knew positively, and could abundantly prove, that Cresap was engaged in the attack on two par- ties of Indians below Wheeling, just before the massacre at the mouth of Yellow Creek, but that at that last massacre Cresap was not present, neither had he, Zane, any doubt but that these three attacks were the cause of Dunmore's war which immediately followed. James Chambers, who lived near Baker's house, opposite Yellow Creek, and was perfectly cognizant of all the facts of the massacre, deposed that Captain Cresap was not there that day ; that Cresap's party had con- fessed in his presence that they had attacked Indians just previous, friends and relatives of Logan, and that the woman killed at Baker's was Logan's sister. Judge James testified that in '74 he lived near Fort Henry, and knew that there was a war club with a note attached, left at the house of a settler, whose family were cut off by Logan's party, of which the following is a copy : " Captain Cresap* — What did 172 Our Western Border. you kill my people on Yellow Creek for ? The white people killed my kin at Conestoga a great while ago, and I thought nothing of that. But you killed my kin again on Yellow Creek, and took my cousin prisoner. Then I thought I must kill, too, and I have been three times to war since, but the Indians are not angry — only myself. Captain John Logan. July 21st, 1774." Confirmatory of the above, we have the testimony of Mr. Robinson, the person whom we have already mentioned as having been captured by Logan in person and afterwards saved by him from the tor- ture, who testifies that Logan always treated him with exceeding kindness and conversed frequently with him, always charging Captain Cresap with the murder of his family; that on July 21st (the very date of the paper given above) Logan brought him, Robinson, a piece of paper and told him he must write a letter for him, which he meant to carry and leave in some house where he should kill somebody : that he made ink with gunpowder, and that he, Robinson, then wrote the let- ter by his direction, addressing Captain Cresap in it, and that the pur- port of it was to ask why he had killed his people, &c, and signed it with Logan's name, which letter Logan took and set out again for war, and that he understood that among the Indians killed at Yellow Creek was a sister of Logan, enceinte, whom the whites mutilated and stuck on a pole : that he, Robinson, was released in November, but while he re- mained, his Indian relatives by adoption were exceedingly indulgent to him, never allowing him to do any work. We next have a very important and highly interesting letter from General Gibson, who deposed that he was with Dunmore at Camp Charlotte : that at the request of the Indians that Dunmore should send some one to their town who could understand their language, he, Gib- son, was so dispatched : that on his arrival at the town, Logan came to where deponent was sitting with Cornstalk and other chiefs and asked him to walk out with him : that they then went together into a copse of woods, where they sat down, when Logan, after shedding abundance of tears, delivered to him the speech nearly as related by Jefferson. Gibson further deposed that he then told Logan that it was not Colonel Cresap who had murdered his relatives, and that although his son, Cap- tain Michael Cresap, was with the party who killed a Shawnee chief and other Indians, yet he was not present when his relatives were killed opposite the mouth of Yellow Creek. To our mind the evidence presented is entirely conclusive, and if the speech generally accredited to Logan is a fabrication at all, it is the fabrication of Gibson and not of Jefferson. We will only add a few facts relating to the life and death of a chief who has been embalmed Logan, the Famed Mingo Chief. 173 in history with so much romantic interest attached to his memory, He was the second son of Shikellimus, a celebrated chief of the Cayuga nation, who lived at Shamokin, or Conestoga > Pa., and who was a zealous and faithful friend of Christianity and the English. His son was called Logan after the benevolent James Logan, of Pennsyl- vania, with whom Shikellimus was long on intimate terms. Exactly when Logan emigrated west is not known, nor indeed is much of his life while in Pennsylvania. It is certain, however, that he always had the reputation of being a just, noble and friendly Indian. Judge Brown, of Mifflin county, asserts that he was the first settler in the Kisacoquillas valley, Pa., and that when a young man he and three others had wandered out one day in search of springs. The party started after a bear and became separated. Brown was looking about for the bear's tracks when all at once he came upon what is now called the Big Spring, and, setting his rifle against a bush, he ran down to get a drink from its pure, sparkling waters. Upon putting his head down, he saw reflected in the water, on the opposite side, the shadow of a tall Indian : he sprang to his rifle, when the savage gave a yell, whether for peace or war the young hunter could not exactly make out, but upon Brown seizing his rifle and facing the stranger, the savage knocked up the pan of his gun, threw out the priming, and extended his open palm in token of amity. After putting down the guns they both shook hands again. This was Logan, " the best specimen of humanity," writes Brown, "I ever met with, either white or red. He could speak a little English, and told me there was another white hunter a little way down the stream, and guided me to his camp." This proved to be Samuel Maclay, also searching for lands to settle on. The two young men thus made known to each other through Logan, were intimate friends ever after. A few days after they went to Logan's Spring, about six miles dis- tant, where was their Indian friend's camp, and Maclay and Logan soon became engaged in shooting at a mark for a dollar a shot. Logan lost four or five times and confessed himself beaten. When the two whites were about to leave, Logan went into his hut and brought out as many deer skins as he had lost dollars, but Maclay refused to take them, alleging that they had been his guests and did not come to rob him ; that the shooting was only a trial of skill and the bet merely nominal. Upon this Logan drew himself up with great dignity and said, " Me bet to make you shoot your best — me gentleman, and me take your dollar if me beat." Maclay, seeing that he would affront his sensitive friend, was obliged to take the skins, and so nice was Logan's sense o\ honor that he could not be prevailed on to take even a horn of powdei 174 Our Western Border. in return. Logan soon went to the Allegheny, and Brown never saw him again. Heckewelder, the Moravian missionary, was among the very earliest residents in the West, and asserts that Logan was introduced to him by an Indian as the friend of the white people, and that he thought him an Indian of superior talents. He exclaimed against the whites for im- posing liquor on the Indians, but confessed his own fondness for it. Heckewelder was then living at the Moravian town on the Beaver, and Logan was living at the mouth of that stream. The next year, when the Moravians were passing down the Beaver, on their way to the Mus- kingum, Heckewelder called at Logan's settlement, and was received with every possible civility. Indian reports of Logan, after the murder of his relatives in '74, state that during Dunmore's war, he took all the revenge he could, and was loth to lay down the hatchet. His expres- sions denoted a deep melancholy. Life, he said, had become a torment to him. He knew no more what pleasure was ; thought it would have been better had he never been born. Report further states that he be- came delirious, declared he would kill himself, went to Detroit, drank very freely, and did not seem to care what became of him. In this condition he left Detroit, and on his way between that place and Miami was murdered. Heckewelder continues that when he was on his way to Detroit in '8i, he was shown the spot where his death occurred. Zeis- berger, a far-famed and entirely credible missionary among the Dela wares, stated that he knew Logan from a boy ; that he was a man ot talents, judgment and quick apprehension, and doubted not in the least that Logan sent to Dunmore the speech that has become of such world- wide celebrity. When Simon Kenton was being carried prisoner to Sandusky, and had been treated very harshly — a savage having shortly before cut through his shoulder with an axe — he arrived at Logan's tent, and says that the Mingo chief walked gravely up to where he stood and said: "Well, young man, these young men seem very mad at you." "Yes> sir, they certainly are," naturally replied poor Kenton. "Well, don't be disheartened. I am a great chief. You are to go to Sandusky; they speak of burning you there, but I will send two runners to-morrow to speak good for you." This he did, and until their return Kenton was kindly treated, being permitted to spend much of his time with Logan, who conversed freely and in the most friendly manner. In the evening Logan was closeted with the two runners, but did not visit Kenton till next morning, when he walked up to him, gave him a piece of bread, told him that he must be carried to Sandusky, and without another word turned upon his heel and left him. Kenton says that Logan's form was Logan, the Famed Mingo Chief. 175 striking and manly, his countenance calm and noble, and he spoke English fluently and correctly. This was in '78. A Captain John Dunkin, according to a contribu- tion in the American Pioneer, was also taken prisoner the same year, and saw a good deal of Logan, who spoke both English and French, and told Dunkin that he, Logan, had two souls — one good, one bad; when the good soul was uppermost, he was kind and humane, but when the bad soul ruled he was savage and cruel. Dunkin said that he was killed by his own brother-in-law on returning from a council in Detroit. It is much to be regretted that a chief who was so uniformly friendly to the whites, and who, during his whole life, exhibited so many noble and interesting traits of character, should have been so wronged and abused by reckless, wanton borderers, as to turn all his sweetness into gall, and to render bitter and wretched the whole balance of his life. Had hia family been spared, his life would probably have been widely different. Let us drop a tear over human passion, and let the name of Logaa Uvs tswng those of the good and noble. 176 Our Western Border, THE MASSACRE OF THE CONESTOGA INDIANS. Logan, in the letter attached to a war club, left at a borderer's house , used these significant words: " The white people killed my kin at Conestoga a great while ago, and I thought nothing of that, but you killed my kin again at Yellow Creek," &c. This allusion was to the massacre in 1763, over ten years previous, of a small settlement of friendly and in- offensive Iroquois at Conestoga, near Lancaster. The perpetrators of this cruel and cowardly slaughter were a company of fanatical back- woodsmen of the Scotch-Irish stock, called the Paxton Boys, who lived at Paxton, Derry and Donegal, old settlements near Harrisburg. These rude and hardy borderers, consisting of scouts, rangers, hunters, farm- ers and traders, had suffered enormously for years by Indian forays and scalpings and were goaded almost to desperation at their loss of rela- tives, property and stock. They looked upon the redmen as so many dogs, and, many of them being religious zealots, found abundant war- rant in Scripture for treating the Indians like the Canaanites of old, to "smite them and utterly destroy them: to make no covenant with them nor show mercy unto them." These hot-headed and tempestuous fanatics were about as much exas- perated at the Quakers and the Provincial Legislature as they were against the savages themselves. They complained, and with much show of justice, that while they on the harassed and smitten border, were scourged and peeled, the Legislature and the Quakers sat at their ease, perfectly indifferent, wasting the precious days in factious wrangling and more careful of the copper-colored pagans than they were of them. It is difficult for us in these times, and only reading of the devastating outrages of savages as a matter of remote interest, to understand the intense bitterness and implacable, unquenchable hatred that many of the frontiermen had against the redmen, whom they deemed the authors of all their woes and the barriers to their success as land-getters. The misery of the matter was that with many this hate was blind and indis- criminate. They placed all Indians in the same category, only fit to be tracked and hunted like wild beasts and utterly swept off the face of the earth. This little band of lounging, broom-selling Conestogas were unfor- tunate enough to incur the suspicion of the Paxton Boys and were charged, if not with secretly indulging in the border murders and rob- Massacre of the Conestoga Indians. 177 beries, at least with stealthily abetting them and sneakingly conveying information to the actual depredators. The Paxton Boys had formed themselves into a body of rangers for the protection of the frontier, under the auspices of their pastor, the Rev. Colonel Elder, who went about with cocked hat and rifle slung on shoulder — and under the lead- ership of Captain Lazarus Stewart and Matthew Smith, daring' and reckless partisan Captains of the day. Smith heard through some wan- dering scouts that an Indian, who was known to have committed some late atrocities, had been traced to the Conestoga settlement. This was enough to fire his excitable heart, and hastily collecting a few of his "boys," of like mind with himself, they reached the peaceable Indian hamlet. Here Smith dismounted, and crawling forward, rifle in hand, to reconnoitre, saw, or fancied he saw, a number of armed warriors in the cabins. The party being too weak for an attack, returned to Paxton. Run ners were sent out, and the very next day a body of fifty-seven mounted men, bloodily resolute on extirpating the Conestogas, set out, arriving at their destination by daybreak. Separating into small squads, they stealthily surrounded the humble cabins. An Indian, alarmed at the strange sounds without, issued from one of the huts and came in their direction. " He is the very one that killed my mother !" asserted one with an oath, and drawing sight he was ruthlessly shot down. This was signal enough with men only too anxious to commence the slaughter. With an appalling shout they now rushed forward out of the night ; burst into the peaceful cabins; shot, stabbed, tomahawked and scalped all they could find therein to the number of fourteen men, women and children, and then, seizing on whatever booty offered, they set fire to the hamlet. The rest of the hapless community were scattered about the neighborhood. On the return of these night-prowlers from their unholy mission, they were met by Thomas Wright, who testified afterwards that, struck by their disordered appearance, and seeing a bloody tomahawk at each sad- dle bow, he asked where they had been and what doing, and on being told, they, seeing the horror depicted on his countenance, demanded of him if he believed in the Bible, and if the Scriptures did not command that the heathen should be destroyed. The devil could always quote Scripture for his purpose, and strangely believing or affecting to believe that they had been doing good service, these bloody miscreants quietly dispersed to their homes. A prodigious excitement was caused by these lawless and execrable proceedings. The community was divided in opinion, but the great majority being of those who had personally suffered from savage bar- 12 178 Our Western Border. barities, either upheld or excused the massacre. The affrighted and horror-stricken remnant of the Conestogas knew not what to do or where to turn to escape the fury of their rancorous foes, but at length were advised to appeal to the sheriff of the county for protection, and were conducted amid growing excitement to Lancaster and lodged in the stone county jail, so strong that it was thought to afford ample pro- tection. The news of this flagrant outrage spread like wild-fire. The Goveiv. nor issued a proclamation denouncing the inhuman act and offering a reward for the perpetrators. But the blood of the Paxton Boys was now inflamed. Hearing that an Indian, charged with shedding the blood of one of their number, was among these jail refugees, a party oi over fifty assembled secretly, and boldly marched off towards Lancaster. It is said that the design of the leader, Lazarus Stewart, was only to de- mand this one man and to put him singly to death in case he were found guilty of murder. But unfortunately human passion once thor- oughly aroused cannot be so easily allayed. It gets beyond control and resembles the tiger's fierceness upon the taste of blood. The fighting parson, Elder, used all his influence to divert them from their unlawful design, He overtook them on horseback, plead, remonstrated and threatened, tut all to no purpose. He then, as a last resort, reined up his horse in front so as to block up the narrow path and commanded them to disperse. Upon this, Matthew Smith, pointing his rifle at hw pastor's heart, ordered him to make room or he would fire. A passage was thus made and the determined band soon clattered into the streets of Lancaster ; turned their panting horses into a tavern yard ; hurried to the jail in a body ; burst open the door and rushed in with horrid yells and armed to the teeth with rifle, knife and tomahawk. The poor Indians to the number of near twenty were huddled to- gether in the jail yard. They heard with dismay the furious clamor and saw with horror the inbursting mob of cruel and yelling persecutors. It was said, on the testimony, that several of them snatched up billets of wood in self-defence. Whether this may have changed the purpose of the invaders will never be known, but certain it is that they were now ferociously assaulted, trampled over, slashed with knives and tom- ahawks, and shot with rifles, and so close, too, that heads were blown to pieces and brains scattered about over the walls and ground. While this was going on, the magistrates and chief citizens were in church at- tending the Christmas service. The door was suddenly thrown open and the horror-stricken assemblage could hear the broken exclamations of " Murder ! — the jail ! — the Paxton Boys ! — the Indians !" It was enough to curdle the blood of all there. Before any, how- Massacre of the Conestoga Indians. 179 ever, could reach the jail, the bloody deed had been finished, and the murderers were seen galloping in a body out of the town. Franklin, in his account of the massacre, asserts that when the wretched victims discovered the horrible purpose of the rioters, "they divided into their little families, the children clinging to their parents ; they fell on their knees, protested their innocence, declared love to the English, asserting that, in their whole lives, they had never done them injury, and in this posture they all received the hatchet." This picture may be somewhat overdrawn, but certain it is that all who witnessed the shocking specta- cle united in declaring that the poor wretches met their fate with that unflinching stoicism which characterizes their race. A company of Highland soldiers on their way from Fort Pitt to Philadelphia, were en- camped at the time in or near the town. It is said that they refused to interfere, but this is not very probable, since the whole dread tragedy, so carefully had it been concocted and so silently and swiftly executed, only occupied about a quarter of an hour. The people now crowded into the jail yard to gaze stupidly upon the ghastly, pitiable spectacle. That it was a revolting sight the following extract of a letter addressed to Heckewelder, the missionary, by a re- spectable and intelligent citizen of the place, fully attests. We quote: "From fifteen to twenty Indians were placed there for protection. The first notice I had of this affair was while at my father's store, near the court house. I saw a number of people running down street towards the gaol, which enticed me and other lads to follow. At about sixty yards from the jail we met from twenty-five to thirty men, well mounted on horses, and armed with rifles, tomahawks and scalping-knives, fully equipped for murder. I ran into the prison yard, and there, Oh, what a horrid sight presented itself to my view ! Near the back door of the prison lay an old Indian and his squaw, particularly well known and esteemed by the people of the town on account of their placid and friendly conduct. His name was Will Sock. Across him and his squaw lay two children of about the age of three years, whose heads were split with the tomahawk and their scalps all taken off. Towards the middle of the jail yard lay a stout Indian shot in the breast. His legs were chopped with the tomahawk, his hands cut off, and finally a rifle-ball discharged in his mouth, so that his head was blown to atoms, and the brains were splashed against and were yet hanging to the wall for three or four feet around. This man's hands and feet had also been chopped off with a tomahawk. In this manner lay the whole of them — men, women and children, spread about the prison yard — shot, scalped, hacked, cut to pieces." But this was not to be the end. A dreadful ferment was created all 180 Our Western Border. along the border by this atrocious massacre. The people of the fron- tier knew that many of the men engaged in the deed were not brutal ruffians, but were among the best and most substantial residents, who had long and effectively been employed, too, as rangers in protecting the whole border. They knew, also, how much that border had suffered from savage atrocities, and while they heartily condemned the crime, they inclined to excuse the perpetrators of it. But in Philadelphia it was widely different. They there looked up on the massacre in some such light as we would now regard it. They — Quakers especially — as- sailed not only the murderers, but the whole Presbyterian sect with a perfect tempest of reproach and abuse. In obedience to public cla- mor, large rewards were offered for the arrest of the criminals, but these shrank not from the trial, but boldly proclaimed the necessity of their act, and defended it by argument and Scripture. So great was the excitement along the frontier that to arrest the ringleaders of the murderous band would have been almost impossible, or, at least, would have required the assistance of a large military force. The excitement, instead of decreasing by time, daily augmented, but not altogether from this one cause. The backwoods people had always suspected the Moravian or Christianized Indians of complicity in the attacks of the heathen Indians, and several attempts had been made to assault and drive them out of their country. So dangerous became their position that at last, though some time before the proceedings just narrated, the Quaker assembly was compelled to disarm and then re- move these converted Indians to Philadelphia for safety. Much against their will, they had, in the midst of Winter, to prepare for migration. Their total number was one hundred and forty. It was in November when the forlorn procession — the aged, the young, the sick and the blind borne in wagons, while the rest went on foot — commenced its weary journey. At every village and hamlet they were rudely greeted with curses and threats. In passing through Germantown they were insulted by an infuriate mob, but, meek and gentle, the jaded pilgrims answered not, but steadily kept moving on, arriving at the Philadel- phia barracks in safety. Here the soldiers quartered there, obstinately refused them admis- sion, ind the shrinking, cowering fugitives were compelled to stand in the street for five hours, constantly exposed to a hooting, yelling and cursing rabble, who threatened to kill them outright. The soldiers still persisting in their contumacy, the deplorable procession again took up its dreary march, followed by an angry and tumultuous mob of many thousands and proceeded some six miles further to Province Island, and were there lodged in some waste buildings. Here they held their regu- Massacre of the Conestoga Indians. 181 lar religious meetings and remained peaceably until the massacre of the Cone'stogas, already related, put an entirely different complexion on matters. Those engaged in that successful piece of butchery, were soon heard to boast that they would finish this Indian business at Phila- delphia The idea, strange as it may seem, soon grew rapidly into favor. The disgraceful conduct of the Quakers — they alleged — in maintaining, at public expense, a lot of savages all through the Winter, who in Spring would be found scalping and butchering upon the border, was constantly rung upon with all the changes. Meetings were now held, inflammatory harangues delivered, false and absurd reports were industriously circulated, and soon these reck* less and hot-headed borderers, finding their sentiments were re-echoe>i from a noisy and lawless party in Philadelphia itself, began to clamor to be led on to that city. Once before they had sent thither a wagon load of the scalped and mutilated bodies of their neighbors to impress the Quakers with a realizing sense of how they on the frontier were treated by their special pets, the Indians. Now they resolved to go themselves* armed cap-a-pie, and to demand protection. This was, indeed, no empty threat, for a force estimated at from five to fifteen hundred men mustered in January, under their most popular leaders, and actually took up the march to Philadelphia. The ostensible object of this audacious excursion was the destruction of the Moravian Indians; what political designs against the Quakcis lay back of this have never been divulged. Their numbers gathered strength at every mile, and the prodigious excitement which the thick- crowding reports of this singularly daring expedition engendered in Philadelphia may be faintly imagined. Terror and confusion were uni- versal, and the city was working like a hive of bees. Even the non- resisting Quakers were aroused to a sense of what was due from their manhood in this alarming exigency. The magistrates were pressingly urged to take immediate measures for repelling force by force. Eight pieces of heavy ordnance were drawn up to the barracks, where the alarmed Indians were now confined. The citizens, and even many of the young Quakers, took up arms and stationed themselves at these bar- racks, which they put in as good a condition of defence as possible. On the night of February the 5 th, the mob of borderers were an- nounced as approaching. Every preparation was made to receive them. The whole city was in an uproar. The bells were rung, the streets were illuminated, and the citizens, being suddenly awakened from sleep, were ordered to the town hall to receive their arms and am- munition. Two companies of volunteers repaired to the barracks, and four more cannon were mounted. These prompt and decided prepara- 182 Our Western Border. tions caused the approaching mob to pause and ponder. Some gentle* men were deputed to visit them and ask their cause of complaint. With great presumption and arrogance, they asserted there were several murderers among the Moravians, and insolently demanded that these should be delivered up to them. To pacify them, one of the ring- leaders was induced to enter the barracks and asked to point out the cffenders. Each shrinking Indian was examined, but not one was found against whom any crime could be truthfully charged. The rioters, on hearing this, then asserted that the Quakers must have re- moved and secreted the criminal Indians. This was proved false, and the turbulent invaders were forced to relinquish their design and to take up the homeward march. The Indians now became objects of great curiosity, and were visited by thousands of all ranks and conditions. Their Sunday services were attended by crowds of respectful listeners, and the soldiers themselves were won to kindness by their meekness and sincerity. Yet still their condition was a very hard one. Accustomed to the free, roaming life of the woods, confinement bore disastrously upon them. The high- seasoned food disagreed with them, and as the Summer advanced, fevers and small-pox broke out among them, causing great loss and al- most despair. No less than fifty-six of them died during this long cap- tivity, while the remainder were not released until March, 1765, after the Indian war was well over. They now settled at a new place which they built up near Wyalusing Creek, and called Friedenshutten (Tents of Peace). They were now at peace, and at length, after all their severe trials and troubles! were, for a season, contented, happy and prosperous. Chapter III. THE LIFE AND CUSTOMS OF THE WESTERN PIONEERS. Not with the bold array Of armies dread, came they Proud conquest on. Through a long warfare rude, With patient hardihood, By toil and strife and blood, The soil was won. — L. % Cist. We now arrive at a period in Western Border History which, if it have not for the reader so much of a general interest, has yet a morp special fascination since it abounds in a series of remarkable personal adventures and captivities ; in fierce and obstinate individual conflicts, and in incidents of varied and thrilling interest. By the close of Dunmore's war, and at the outbreak of the Revolution, the tide of emi- gration had fairly set in for the West. It was relentless as fate — as irresistible as old ocean's onrolling waves. The restless, adventurous pioneer still pushed on and on ; penetrating deeper and deeper into the wilderness; ready to bid a stern defiance to all who opposed, and hold- ] ag on to the soil he had so valorously won, with a grim and unflinch- ing tenacity. Often rudely checked, they were never disheartened; iought out and harassed by a foe that neither pitied or slumbered, they still fought on and on. Ever environed by perils ; subjected to every variety of exposure and privation; frequently decimated by savage marauds and forays, and having those most dear to their hearts Mlled, scalped or carried into captivity, yet they never turned back upon foe, but met him or hunted him with resolute heart, unquailing eye, and with a cool, reckless courage that was almost sublime. Thus the borderers grew stronger, bolder and more stubborn as the years rolled on. The ringing sounds of their keen axes could be ever heard in new clearings, and within the deepest core of the wilderness ; strange forests were notched or girdled in each successive year, serving to mark additional claims ; the jealous denizens of the woods would come suddenly upon roving surveying parties with pole and chain, and 184 Our Western Border. goaded to madness at the sight, would attack them with vindictive bit terness. An undying and implacable hatred grew up between the two races, as fierce and bitter as that which formerly existed between Moot and Spaniard, and engendered, too, by much the same cause. One sight of each other was the signal for a grapple and a deadly struggle. With kindled eye and expanded nostril, they swiftly rushed to the con- flict, inspired by ~, ... . . , ' * ' 1 hat stern joy which warriors feel la meeting foemen worthy of their steel. Now it was that such daring and indomitable characters as Boone^ Kenton, Harrod, Brady, Logan, Sevier, the Poes, the Zanes, the Mc- Collochs and the Wetzells, first came to the fore-front- — the most promi- nent types of their class ; to whom fear was utterly unknown ; who all had a certain free dash of the wilderness in their ways and wander- ings ; whose very buckskin garments had the odor of the forest mould 01 herbage about them, and who soon learned to surpass even their swarthy foes themselves in woodcraft, in trailing, in artful strategy and in hand- to-hand combat. For several years, parts of the Monongahela valley, the region about Fort Pitt and the West Virginia valleys had been sparsely settled, and the Zanes had formed a flourishing colony at Fort Henry, (now Wheeling.) Most of the emigrants came by way of Redstone, (now Brownsville,) on the Monongahela, and since, by Dunmore's treaty at Camp Charlotte a peace or rather a temporary truce was patched up, the settlers came out in swarms, extending as far west as Kentucky. It was the true, genuine spirit of the Anglo-Saxon which spurned all restraint and subdued all things to its will, that impelled them, and they clustered about the var- ious outposts of civilization, prepared to "do or die " — to wrest a gen- erous living from the teeming soil, or leave their bones within its bosom. Those who located along the Ohio differed from those who se- lected lands in the interior. They were more ambitious of pushing themselves forward and many of them, anticipating the time when the Indian territory across the Ohio would be thrown open to settlement, crossed to explore the country and to pick out for themselves the choice spots. Around these they would generally mark trees or otherwise define boundaries by which they could be afterwards identified. There were, also, at every frontier post, persons who were attracted thither by their love of hunting and by a genuine attachment for the wild, unshackled scenes of a ranger's life. Existence in the house or in forts was inex- pressibly irksome to them. They only felt perfectly free and joyous when roaming the unbounded forests, couched on their beds of leaves or skins at night, and utterly heedless of all restraint or trammel. Life and Customs of the Western Pioneers. 185 This constant practice in the u mimicry of war" soon begot a nerve and skill which enabled them to cope successfully with the wily savage. They were perfectly at home in the woods by day or by night, and •:ould steer their way to any part of the compass with as much unerring ceitainty as the redskins themselves. It was, notwithstanding the ex- cessive hazard in time of war, a free and happy life, and it is no marvel that so many of the frontier men and youth became completely enamored of this Gypsey abandon of the forest, passing most of their time in vagabondizing hither and yon, "wandering at their own sweet will." When gathered about their fire at night, the stars glimmering dimly through the roof above them, they could right heartily join in the " Song of the Pioneer : " The hunt, the shot, the glorious chase; The captured elk or deer ; The camp, the big, bright fire, and then The rich and wholesome cheer ; The sweet, sound sleep at dead of night By the camp fire blazing high, Unbroken by the wolfs long howl Or the panther springing by. As one of their own number truthfully writes : " Various as may have been their objects in emigrating, no sooner had they come 10 gether than there existed in each settlement a perfect unison of feeling. Similitude of situation and commonality of danger, operating as a magic charm, stifled in their birth all those little bickerings which are so apt to disturb the quiet of ' society.' Ambition of preferment and the pride of place, too often but hindrances to social intercourse, were un- known among them. Equality of condition rendered them strangers a like to the baneful distinctions created by wealth as to other adven- titious circumstances. A sense of mutual dependence for their common security locked them in amity ; and, conducting their several purposes in harmonious concert, together they toiled and together suffered. "In their intercourse with others they were kind, beneficent and disin- terested ; extending to all the most generous hospitality which their cir- cumstances could afford. That selfishness which prompts to liberality for the sake of remuneration, and proffers the civilities of life with an eye to individual interest, was unknown to them. They were kind for kindness' sake, and sought no other recompense than the never-failing concomitant of good deeds — the reward of an approving conscience. Such were the early pioneers of the West, and we might even now profit from the contemplation of their humble virtues, hospitable homes, .md spirits patient, noble, proud and free — their self-respect grafted on innocent thoughts ; their days of health and nights of sleep— their toils 186 Our Western Border. by danger dignified, yet guiltless — their hopes of cheerful old age and a quiet grave, with cross and garland over its green turf, and their grand- children's love for an epitaph.- The great object with most who moved West was, of course, to better their condition, and this more especially after the Revolution. Land wa3 the great desideratum, and it could be obtained literally "for the taking up." The methods in which this was done are best described by Rev. Joseph Doddridge, D. D., whose father moved into West Virginia in 1 773, just before the outbreak of Dunmore's, or, as it is sometimes called, Cresap's war. Brought up in a rude wilderness cabin, the Doc- tor spent his whole life amid the dangers and vicissitudes which made up the backwoodsman's life, and has written very graphically of the sports, customs, struggles, privations and vicissitudes which went to make up the pioneer's average life. His earliest recollections were of the humble log cabin, the protecting fort, the encircling woods, the ex- citements of the chase, and the perils of the redskin scalp-hunters. His infant slumbers were disturbed by the yell of the Indian, and the scene of his boyish sports was a dense and sombre forest, in which danger lay ambushed in so many shapes that even the lads of the border grew cun- ning in eluding or self-possessed in meeting it. We shall hereatter quote freely and liberally from his famous "Notes," mm lm$ out ol print. The Hardships of Settlers. 187 THE TITLE TO LANDS— THE HARDSHIPS OF SETTLERS. ''Our early land laws allowed four hundred acres and no more to a set* t'Jement right. Many of our first settlers seemed to regard this as enough for one family, and believed that any attempt to get more would be sin- ful, although they might have evaded the law, which allowed of but one settlement right to any one individual, by taking out the title papers in the names of others, to be afterwards transferred to them as if by pur- chase. Some few, indeed, pursued this practice, but it was generally held in detestation. The division lines between those whose lands adjoined were generally made in an amicable manner before any survey was made by the parties concerned. In doing this they were guided mainly by the tops of ridges and water courses. Hence, the greater number of farms in the west- ern parts of Pennsylvania and Virginia bore a striking resemblance to an amphitheatre. The buildings occupied a low situation, and the tops of the surrounding hills were the boundaries of the tract to which the family mansion belonged. Our forefathers were fond of farms of this description, because, as they said, 'Everything comes to the house down hill.' In the hilly parts of the State of Ohio, the land having been laid out by straight parallel lines, the farms present a different as- pect. There the buildings frequently occupy the tops of the hills. Our people had become so accustomed to the mode of ' getting land for taking it up,' that for a long time it was believed that the west side of the Ohio would ultimately be disposed of in the same way. Hence, almost the whole region between the Ohio and Muskingum was parceled out in 'tomahawk improvements,' but those so claiming were not satis- fied with a single four hundred acie tract. Many owned a great num- ber of tracts of the best land, and thus, in imagination, were as 'wealthy as a South Sea dream.' Some oi these land jobbers did not content themselves with marking trees at the usual height with the initials of their names, but climbed up the large beeches and cut the letters in their retentive bark, from twenty to forty feet from the ground. To enable them to identify these trees at a future period, they made marks on the trees around as references. At an early period of our settlements there was an inferior kind of land title, denominated a 'tomahawk right.' This was made by deadening a few trees near a spring, and marking on one or more of them the initials of the name of the person by whom 188 Our Western Border. the improvement was made. Rights acquired in this way were fre quently bought and sold. The settlement of a new country in the immediate neighborhood of an old one is not attended with much difficulty, because supplies can be readily obtained from the latter ; but the settlement of a country more remote is quite a different thing, because at the outset, food, raiment and the implements of husbandry are only obtained in small supplies and with great difficulty. The task of making new establish- ments in a remote wilderness, in time of profound pea^e, is sufficiently difficult, but when, in addition to all the unavoidable hardships attend- ing on this business, those resulting from an extensive and furious war- fare with savages are superadded, toil, privations and sufferings are then carried to the full extent of the capacity of men to endure them. Such was the wretched condition of our forefathers in making their settlements. To all these other difficulties and privations, the Indian war was a weighty addition. This destructive warfare they were com- pelled to sustain almost single-handed, because the Revolutionary con- test gave full employment for the military strength and resources on the east side of the mountains. Amusing Experiences of Young Doddridge — Coffee and Game. " Some of the early settlers took the precaution to come over the mountains in the Spring, leaving their families behind, to raise crops of corn, and then return and bring them out in the Fall. This was the better way. Others, especially those whose families were small, brought them with them in the Spring. My father took the latter course. His family was but small, and he brought them all with him. The Indian meal which he transported over the mountains was expended six weeks too soon, so that for that length of time we had to live without bread. The lean venison and the breast of wild turkeys, we were taught to call bread. The flesh of the bear was denominated meat. This artifice did not succeed very well ; after living in this way for some time, we became sickly ; the stomach seemed to be always empty and tormented with a sense of hunger. I remember how narrowly the children watched the growth of the potato tops, pumpkin and squash vines, hoping from day to day to get something to answer in the place of bread. How delicious was the taste of the young potatoes when we got them ! What a jubilee when we were permitted to pull the young corn for roasting-ears ! Still more so, when it had acquired sufficient hardness to be made into johnny-cakes, by the aid of a tin grater. We Amusing Experiences of Young Doddridge. 139 then became healthy, vigorous, and contented with our situation, poor is it was. The furniture of the table, for several years after the settlement of the country, consisted of a few pewter dishes, plates and spoons, but mostly of wooden bowls, trenchers and noggins. If these last were scarce, gourds and hard-shelled squashes made up the deficiency. The iron pots, knives and forks, were brought from the east side of the mountains, along with salt and iron, on pack-horses. These articles of furniture corresponded very well with the articles of diet. ' Hog and hominy ' was a dish of proverbial celebrity. Johnny-cake or ' pone ' was at the outset of the settlements the only form of bread in use for breakfast and dinner ; at supper, milk and mush was the standard dish. When milk was scarce, hominy supplied its place, and mush was fre- quently eaten with sweetened water, molasses, bear's oil, or the gravy of fried meat. In our display of furniture, delf, china and silver were unknown. The introduction of delf-ware was considered by many of the back- woods people as a wasteful innovation. It was too easily broken, and the plates dulled their scalping and clasp knives. Tea and coffee, in the phrase of the day, 'did not stick to the ribs.' The idea then preva- lent was that they were only designed for people of quality, who did not labor, or for the rich. A genuine backwoodsman would have thought himself disgraced by showing a fondness for such 'slops.' I well recollect the first time I ever saw a teacup and saucer, and tasted coffee. My mother died when I was about six or seven years of age. My father then sent me to Maryland, with a brother of my grand- father, Mr. Alexander Wells, to go to school. At Colonel Brown's, in the mountains, at Stony Creek glades, I for the first time saw tame geese, and by bantering a pet gander, I got a severe biting by his bill, and a beating by his wings. I wondered very much that birds so large and strong, should be so much tamer than the wild turkey ; at this place, however, all was right, excepting the large birds which they called geese. The cabin and furniture were such as I had been accustomed to see in She backwoods, as my country was then called. At Bedford, everything was changed. The tavern at which my uncle put up, was a stone house, and to make the changes still more complete, it was plastered on the inside, both as to the walls and ceiling. On going into the dining-room, I was struck with astonishment at the appearance of the house. I had no idea that there was any house in the world that was not built of logs ; but here I looked round and could see no logs, and above I could see no joists ; whether such a thing had been made by the hands of man, or had grown so of itself, I could no* 190 Our Western Border. conjecture. I had not the courage to inquire anything about it. When supper came on, my confusion was * worse confounded.' A little cup stood in a bigger one, with some brownish-looking stuff in it, which was neither milk, hominy, nor broth ; what to do with these little cups, and the little spoons belonging to them, I could not tell ; but I was afraid to ask anything concerning the use of them. I, therefore, watched attentively to see what the big folks would do with their little cups and spoons. I imitated them and found the taste of the coffee nauseous beyond anything I had ever tasted in my life. I continued to drink as the rest of the company did, but with tears streaming from my eyes; but when it was to end, I was at a loss to know, as the little cups were filled immediately after being emptied. This circumstance distressed me very much, as I durst not say I had enough. Looking attentively at the grown persons, I saw one man turn his cup bottom upwards and put his little spoon across it. I observed that after this his cup was not filled again. I followed his example, and to my great satisfaction, the result as to my cup was the same. A neighbor of my father, some years after the settlement of the country, had collected a small drove of cattle for the Baltimore market. Amongst the hands employed to drive them, was one who had never seen any condition of society but that of the woodsmen. At one of their lodging-places in the mountain, the landlord and his hired man, in the course of the night, stole two of the bells belonging to the drove, and hid them in a piece of woods. The drove had not gone far in the morning before the bells were missed, and a detachment went back to recover them. The men were found reaping the field of the landlord. They were accused of the theft, but they denied the charge. The torture of 'sweating,' accord- ing to the custom of that time, that is, of suspension by the arms pinioned behind the backs, brought a confession. The bells were pro- cured and hung round the necks of the thieves. In this condition tliey were driven on foot before the detachment until they overtook the drove, which by this time had gone nine miles. A halt was called, and a jury selected to try the culprits. They were condemned to receive a certain number of lashes on the bare back, from the hand of each drover. The man above alluded to was the owner of one of the bells ; when it came to his turn to use the hickory, ' now,' says he to the thief, ' you infernal scoundrel, I'll work your jacket nineteen to the dozen — only think what a rascally figure I should make in the streets of Baltimore without a bell on my horse !' The man was in earnest ; in a country where horses and cattle are pastured in the range, bells are necessary to enable the owners to find Hunting and Hunters of the Border. 191 them ; to the traveler who encamps in the wilderness, they are indis pensable, and the individual described had probably never been placed in a situation in which they were not requisite Hunting and Hunters of the Border — Life in the Woods. "Hunting was an important part of the employment of the early set- tlers. For some years after their emigration, the forest supplied them with the greater part of their subsistence ; some families were without bread for months at a time, and it often happened that the first meal OS the day could not be prepared until the hunter returned with the spoi^ of the chase. Fur and peltry were the circulating mediums of th£ country ; the hunter had nothing else to give in exchange for rifles, salt, lead and iron. Hunting, therefore, was the employment, rathei than the sport, of the pioneers ; yet it was pursued with the alacrity and sense of enjoyment which attend an exciting and favorite amusement. Dangerous and fatiguing as are its vicissitudes, those who become ac- customed to the chase generally retain through life their fondness for the rifle. The class of hunters with whom I was acquainted, were those whose hunting ranges were on the western side of the river, and at the distance of eight or nine miles from it. Fall and Winter was the time for deer, and Winter and Spring for fur-skinned animals, which could be hunted in any month with an R in it. As soon as the leaves were pretty well down and the weather became rainy, accompanied with slight snows, these men, often acting the part of husbandmen, began to feel that they were also hunters, and grew restless and uneasy at home. Everything about them became disagreeable. The house was too warm; the feather bed too soft, and even the good wife was not thought, for the time being, an agreeable companion. The mind of the hunter was wholly occupied with the camp and the chase. I have often seen them get up early in the morning, at this seasoiic walk hastily out and look anxiously to the woods and snuff the autum nal winds with the highest rapture ; then return into the house and cast ss quick and attentive look at the rifle, which was always suspended to a joist by a couple of buck-horns or wooden forks. The hunting dog. understanding the intentions of his master, would wag his tail, and by every blandishment in his power, express his readiness to accompany him to the woods. A hunt usually occupied several days, and often extended to weeks ; the hunter living in a camp, hidden in some seclu- ded place, to which he retired every night, and where he kept his store of ammunition and other plunder. There were individuals who re 192 Our Western Border. mained for months together in the woods, and spent the greater part of their lives in these camps, which are thus described : A hunting-camp, or what was called a half- faced cabin, was of the following form : the back part of it was sometimes a large log ; at the distance of eight or ten feet from this, two stakes were set in the ground a few inches apart ; and at the distance of eight or ten feet from these, two more, to receive the ends of poles for the sides of the camp. The whole slope of the roof was from the front to the back. The covering was made of slabs, skins or blankets, or, if in the Spring of the year, the bark of the hickory or ash tree. The front was left entirely open. The fire was built directly before this opening. The cracks between the poles were filled with moss. Dry leaves served for a bed. It is thus that a couple of men, in a few hours, will construct for themselves a temporary, but tolerably comfortable defence against the inclemencies of the weather. The site for the camp was selected with all the sagacity of the woodsmen, so as to have it sheltered by the surrounding hills from every wind, but more especially from those of the north and south. These shelters were so artfully concealed, as to be seldom discovered except by accident. An uncle of mine, of the name of Samuel Teter, occu- cupied the same camp for several years in succession. It was situated on one of the southern branches of Cross Creek. Although I lived many years not more than fifteen miles from the place, it was not till within a few years ago, that I discovered its situation. It was shown me by a gentleman living in the neighborhood. Viewing the hills round about it, I soon discovered the sagacity of the hunter in the site of his camp. Not a wind could touch him ; and unless by the report of his gun or the sound of his axe, it would have been mere accident if an Indian had discovered his concealment. Hunting was not a mere ramble in pursuit of game, in which there was nothing of skill and calculation ; on the contrary, the hunter, be- fore he set out in the morning, was informed by the state of weather in what situation he might reasonably expect to meet with his game ; whether on the bottoms, or on the sides or tops of the hills. In stormy weather, the deer always seek the most sheltered places, and the leeward sides of hills. In rainy weather, when there is not much wind, they keep in the open woods, on the highest ground. In every situation, it was requisite for the hunter to ascertain the course of the wind, so as tc get to leeward of the game. This he effected by putting his finger in his mouth and holding it there until it became warm, then holcLng it above his head ; the side which hrst became cold, showed which way the wind blew. Weddings in the Olden Time. 1£3 As it was requisite, too, for the hunter to know the cardinal points, he had only to observe the trees to ascertain them. The bark of an aged tree is thicker and much rougher on the north than on the south side. The same thing may be said of the moss. The whole business of the hunter consists in a series of stratagems. From morning till night he was on the alert to gain the wind of his game, and approach it without being discovered. If he succeeded in killing a deer, he skinned it, and hung it up out of the reach of the wolves, and imme- diately resumed the chase till the close of the evening, when he bent his course towards his camp ; when he arrived there he kindled up his fire, and, together with his fellow-hunter, cooked his supper. The sup- per finished, the adventures of the day furnished the tales for the even- ing. The spike buck, the two and three-pronged buck, the doe and barren doe, figure through their anecdotes. After hunting awhile on the same ground, the hunters became ac- quainted with nearly all the gangs of deer within their range, so as to know each flock when they saw them. Often some old buck, by means of his superior sagacity and watchfulness, saved his little gang from the hunter's skill, by giving timely notice of his approach. The cunning of the hunter and of the old buck were staked against each other, and it frequently happened that at the conclusion of the hunting season, the old fellow was left the free, uninjured tenant of his forest ; but if his rival succeeded in bringing him down, the victory was followed by no small amount of boasting. Many of the hunters rested from their labors on the Sabbath day ; some from a motive of piety ; others said that whenever they hunted on Sunday they were sure to have bad luck for the remainder of the week." Weddings in the Olden Time — Strange Frolics and Customs. "For a long time after the first settlement of a country, the inhabitants in general married young. There was no distinction of rank, and very little of fortune. On these accounts the first impression of love resulted in marriage, and a family establishment cost but a little labor and noth- ing else. A wedding engaged the attention of a whole neighborhood, and the frolic was anticipated by old and young with eager expectation. This is not to be wondered at when it is told that a wedding was almost the only gathering which was not accompanied with the labor of reap- ing, log-rolling, building a cabin, or planning some scout or campaign." Among other graphic sketches, the reverend historian gives the fol- lowing deeply interesting account of a wedding in the olden times: "In the morning of the wedding-day, the groom and his attendants 13 194 Our Western Border. assembled at the house of his father, for the purpose of reaching the mansion of his bride by noon, which was the usual time for celebrating the nuptials; which for certain must take place before dinner. Let the reader imagine an assemblage of people, without a store, tailor or man tua-maker within a hundred miles, and an assemblage of horses, without a blacksmith or saddler within an equal distance. The gentlemen, dressed in shoepacks, moccasins, leather breeches, leggins, and linsey hunting shirts, all home made; the ladies, in linsey petticoats, and linsey or linen short gowns, coarse shoes and stockings, handkerchiefs, and buckskin gloves, if any. If there were any buckles, rings, buttons or ruffles, they were relics of old times — family pieces from parents or grand- parents. The horses were caparisoned with old saddles, old bridles or halters, and pack-saddles, with a bag or blanket thrown over them; a rope or string as often constituted the girth as a piece of leather. The march in double file was often interrupted by the narrowness and obstructions of our horse-paths, as they were called, for we had no roads; and these difficulties were often increased, sometimes by the good, and sometimes by the ill will of neighbors, by felling trees and tying grape-vines across the way. Sometimes an ambuscade was formed by the way-side, and an unexpected discharge of several guns took place, so as to cover the wedding company with smoke. Let the reader imagine the scene which followed; the sudden spring of the horses, the shrieks of the girls, and the chivalric bustle of their partners to save them from falling. Some- times, in spite of all that could be done to prevent it, some were thrown to the ground. If a wrist, an elbow, or an ankle, happened to be sprained, it was tied up with a handkerchief, and little more said or thought about it." The Run for the Bottle — The Jigs, Reels and Merry-Makings- Another ceremony commonly took place before the party reached the home of the bride. It was after the practice of making whiskey began, which was at an early period. When the party were about a mile from the place of their destination, two young men would single out to run for the bottle ; the worse the path — the more logs, brush and deep hollows the better, as these obstacles afforded an opportunity for the greater display of intrepidity and horsemanship. The English fox chase, in point of danger to riders and horses, is nothing to this race for the bottle. The start was announced by an Indian yell ; logs, brush, muddy hol- lows, hill and glen were speedily passed by the rival steeds. The bottle The Run for the Bottle. 195 was always filled for the occasion, so that there was no use for judges, for the first who reached the door was presented with the prize. On returning in triumph he announced his victory over his rivals by a shrill whoop. At the head of the troop he gave the bottle, first to the groom and his attendants, and then to each pair in succession to the rear of the line, and then putting the bottle in the convenient and capacious bosom of his hunting shirt, he took his station in line. The ceremony of the marriage preceded the dinner, which was a substantial backwoods feast of beef, pork, fowls, and sometimes venison and bear meat roasted and boiled, with plenty of potatoes, cabbage, and other vegetables. During the dinner the greatest hilarity always pre- vailed, although the table might be a large slab of timber hewed out with a broad axe, supported by four sticks set in auger holes ; and the furniture, some old pewter dishes and plates, eked out with wooden bowls and trenchers. A few pewter spoons, much battered about the edges, were seen at some tables ; the rest were made of horn. If knives were scarce, the deficiency was made up by the scalping knives which every man carried in sheaths suspended to the belt of the hunting shirt. " After dinner the dancing commenced, and generally lasted till the next morning. The figures of the dances were three and four-handed reels and jigs. The commencement was always a square four, which was followed by what was called 'jigging it off :' that is, two of the four would single out for a jig, and be followed by the remaining couple. The jigs were often accompanied with what was called ' cutting out / that is, when either of the parties became tired of the dance, on inti- mation, the place was supplied by some one of the company, without any interruption to the dance. In this way it was often continued till the musician was heartily tired of his situation. Towards the latter part of the night, if any of the company, through weariness, attempted to conceal themselves for the purpose of sleeping, they were hunted up, paraded on the floor, and the fiddler ordered to play ' Hang out till to- morrow morning.' About nine or ten o'clock a deputation of the young ladies stole off the bride and put her to bed. In doing this it frequently happened that they had to ascend a ladder instead of stairs, leading from the dining and ball room to a loft, the floor of which was made of clap-boards lying loose. This ascent, one might think, would put the bride and her attendants to the blush ; but as the foot of the ladder was commonly behind the door, purposely opened for the occasion, and its rounds at the inner ends were well hung with hunting shirts, dresses, and other articles of clothing — the candles being on the opposite side of the house, the exit of the bride was noticed but by few. This done, a deputation 196 Our Western Border. of young men, in like manner, stole off the groom and placed hire snugly by the side of his bride, while the dance still continued; and if seats happened to be scarce, every young man was obliged to offer his lap as a seat for one of his girls. Late at night refreshment in the shape of i black Betty' — the bottle — was sent up the ladder, with sometimes sub- stantial accompaniments of bread, beef, pork and cabbage. The young couple were compelled to eat and drink of whatever was offered them. The feasting and dancing often lasted several days, at the end of which the whole company were so exhausted with loss of sleep, that many days' rest was requisite to fit them to return to their ordinary labors. Sometimes it happened that neighbors or relations not asked to the wedding, took offence, and revenged themselves by cutting off the manes, foretops and tails of horses belonging to the wedding com- pany.' * How the Couple were Settled— Feasting and House-Warming. The same writer thus describes the usual manner of settling the young couple in the world : — " A spot was selected on a piece of land of one of the parents. Shortly after the marriage, a day was appointed for building the cabin. The choppers, carpenters, &c, arranged all the day before. The clap-boards for the roof were split with a large frow, four feet long, and as wide as the timber would allow. They were used without planing or shaving. The puncheons for the floor were made by splitting trees eighteen inches in diameter, and hewing the faces of them with a broad-axe. They were half the length of the floor they were intended to make. The second day was allotted for the raising. In the morning all the neighbors assembled and selected four corner men, whose business it was to notch and place the logs. The rest of the company supplied them with material. By the time the cabin was a few rounds high, the sleepers and floor began to be laid. The door was made by sawing or cutting the logs in one side, so as to make an opening about three feet wide, which was secured by upright pieces of timber, through which holes were bored into the ends of the logs for the purpose of pinning them fast. A similar opening, but wider, was made in one end for a chimney. This was built of logs, and was large enough to admit of a hack and jambs of stone. At the square, two end logs projected a foot or more to receive the bunting poles against which the ends of the first row of clap-boards for the roof were supported. The roof was formed by making the end logs shorter, until a single log formed the comb : on these parallel logs the clap-boards were placed, the ranges of them lapping some distance over those next below How the Couple were Settled. 197 them, and kept in their places by logs placed at a proper distance upon them. The roof, and sometimes the floor, were finished on the same day of the raising. A third day was commonly spent by a few carpenters in leveling of! the floor and making a clap-board door and a table, which latter was made of a split slab and supported by four round limbs set in auger holes. Some three-legged stools were made in the same manner. Some pins stuck in the logs at the back of the house supported some clap-boards, which served for shelves. A single fork, placed with its lower end in a hole in the floor and its upper end fastened to a joist, served for a bedstead by placing a pole in the fork, with one end through a crack between the logs at the end 01 the wall. This front pole was crossed by a shorter one within the fork, with its outer end through another crack. From the front pole, through a crack between the logs of the end of the house, the boards were put on which formed the bottom of the bed. Sometimes other poles were pinned to the forks a little distance above these for the purpose of supporting the front and foot of the bed, while the walls were the support of its back and head. A few pegs around the walls for a display of the coats of the women and hunting shirts of the men, and two small forks 01 buck's horns protruding from a joist for the rifle and shot-pouch, completed the carpenter work. In the meantime the masons were also at work. With the heart-pieces of the clap-board timber, they made billets for chinking up the cracks between the logs of the cabin and the chimney. A large bed of mud mortar was made for daubing over these cracks so filled, and a few stones formed the back and jambs of the chimney. The cabin being thus finished, the ceremony of house-warming took place before the young couple were allowed to move into it. This < warming ' was a dance lasting a whole night, indulged in by the bride and groom, relatives and neighbors. On the day following, the young couple took possession of their new mansion. At house-raisings, log-rollings and harvest parties, every one was expected to do his duty faithfully. A person who shirked his duty on these occasions, was called a 'Laurence,' or some other still more opprobrious epithet, and it it ever came his turn to require a like aid, the idler soon felt his punishment in the general refusal to attend his call. Every man, too, of full age and size, was expected to do his full share of military or scouting duty. If he did not, he was 'hated out as a coward.' Even the want of any article of war equipments, such as ammunition, a sharp flint, a priming wire, a scalping knife or tomahawk, was thought highly disgraceful." 198 Our Western Border. Border Customs and Battles — Tattling — Thieves, &c " A man who, without good cause, failed to go out on a scout 01 campaign when it came to his turn, met with an expression of contempt in the countenances of all his neighbors, and epithets of dishonor were fastened upon him without mercy. Debts, which make such an uproar in civilized life, were then but little known. After the depreciation of the continental currency, they had no money of any kind, but paid for everything by peltry, produce or labor. A good cow and calf were often the price of a bushel of alum salt. Any petty theft was punished with all the infamy that could be heaped upon the offender. A man on a campaign stole from his comrade a cake out of the ashes. He was immediately named ' the bread rounds !' This epithet of reproach was bandied about thus : when he came in sight of a group of men, one of them would call out ' Who comes there?' Another would answer ' The bread rounds.' If any meant to be more serious, he would call out * Who stole a cake out of the ashes ? ' Another would answer out the thief's name in full ; to this a third would give confirma- tion by exclaiming * That's true and no lie ! ' This kind of tongue- lashing he was doomed to bear for the rest of the campaign, as well as for years after. If a theft was detected on the frontier, it was deemed a detestable crime and the maxim was ' a thief must be whipped ! ' If the theft wis serious, a Jury of the neighborhood, after hearing the testimony, would condemn the culprit to Moses' Law — that is, to forty stripes, save one. If the theft was trifling, the offender was doomed to carry on his back the U. S. flag of thirteen stripes, which stripes were well and heartily laid on. This was followed by sentence of exile. He had to decamp in so many days, under penalty of having his stripes doubled. If a woman was given to tattling and slander, she was allowed to say what she pleased without being believed, her tongue being said to be no scandal. With all their rudeness these people were given to hospitality and freely divided their rough fare with a neighbor or a stranger, and would have been offended at the offer of pay. In their forts and settlements, they lived, worked, fought, feasted and suffered together in cordial har- mony. They were warm and constant in their friendships. On the other hand, they were revengeful in their resentments, and the point of honor sometimes led to personal combats. If one called another a liar, he was considered as having given a challenge which the one who re- ceived it must accept or be deemed a coward. If the injured party The Household Customs. 199 was unable to fight the aggressor, he might get a friend to do it for him. The same thing took place on a charge of cowardice or any other dishonorable action — a battle must follow. Thus circumstanced, our people in early times were very cautious of speaking evil of their neighbors. Sometimes pitched battles occurred, in which time, place and seconds were appointed beforehand. I remember seeing one of these in my father's fort. One of the young men knew well that he should get the worst of the battle, and no doubt repented the engagement, but there was no getting over it. The point of honor demanded the risk of a bat- tle. He took his whipping ; the contestants then shook hands, and that was an end of it. The mode of battle in those days was danger- ous in the extreme; although no weapons were used, fists, teeth and feet were used at will, but, above all, the detestable practice of gouging, by which eyes were sometimes put out, rendered this mode of fighting frightful indeed. The ministry of the Gospel contributed immensely to the happy change which has been effected in our western society. At an early period in our settlement, three Presbyterian clergymen com- menced their labors. They were pious, patient, laborious men, who collected their people into regular congregations, and did all for them that circumstances would allow. It was no disparagement to them that their first churches were in the shady groves, and their first pulpits a kind of tent, constructed of a few rough slabs and covered with clap- boards." The Household Customs — Hunters in Indian Dress, "The women did the offices of the household, milked the cows, cooked the mess, prepared the flax, spun, wove, and made the garments of linen or linsey. The men hunted and brought in the meat; they planted, ploughed and gathered the corn. Grinding it into meal at the hand- mill or pounding it into hominy in the mortar, was occasionally the work of either or the joint labor of both. The men alone exposed themselves to danger, fought the Indians, cleared the land, reared the hut or built the fort in which the women were placed for safety. Much use was made of the skins of deer for dress, while the bear and buffalo skins were consigned to the floor for beds and covering. Wooden ves- sels, either turned or coopered, were in common use as furniture. A tin cup was as rare a luxury as an iron fork. Every hunter carried his knife ; it was no less the implement of a warrior ; not unfrequently the rest of the family were left with but one or two' for the use of all. When the bed was, by chance or refinement, elevated above the floor, it was often laid on slabs placed across poles 200 Our Western Border. and supported on forks; or, when the floor was of puncheons, the bed- stead was hewed pieces, pinned on upright posts or let into them by auger holes. The food was of the most wholesome kind. The richest milk, the finest butter and best meat that ever delighted man's palate, were eaten with a relish which health and labor only could command. Hats were made of native fur, and the buffalo wool employed to make cloth, as was also the bark of the wild nettle. There was some paper money in the country. If there was any gold and silver, it was sup- pressed. The price of a beaver hat was, in the depreciated currency of the day, worth five hundred dollars The hunting shirt was universally worn by the men. This was a kind of loose frock, reaching half way down the thighs, with large sleeves, open before, and so wide as to lap over a foot or more when belted. The cape was large and sometimes handsomely fringed with a raveled piece of cloth of a different color from that of the hunting shirt itself. The bosom of this shirt served as a wallet to hold a chunk of bread, cakes, jerk, tow for wiping the barrel of the rifle, or any other necessary for the hunter or warrior. The belt, which was always tied behind, answered several purposes besides that of holding the dress to- gether. In cold weather, the mittens, and sometimes the bullet-bag, occupied the front part of it. To the right side was suspended the tomahawk, and to the left the scalping knife in its leathern sheath. The hunting shirt was generally made of linsey; sometimes of coarse linen, and a few of dressed deer skins. These last were very cold and uncomfortable in wet weather. The skirt and jacket were of the common fashion. A pair of drawers or breeches and leggins were the dress of the thighs and legs ; a pair «^f moccasins answered for the feet much better than shoes, and were made of dressed deer skin. They were mostly made out of a single piece, with a gathering seam along the top of the foot, and another from the bottom of the heel, without gathers, as high as the ankle joint, or higher. Flaps were left on each side to reach some distance up the leg, and were adapted to the ankles and lower part of the leg by thongs of deer skin, so that no dust, snow or gravel could find its way within. The moccasins in general use cost but a few hours of labor to fashion, and were done by a moccasin awl made from the back spring of an old clasp knife. This awl, with its buck-horn handle, was an appendage of every bullet-pouch strap, together with a roll of buckskin thongs for mending moccasins, which was the labor of almost every evening. They were sewed and patched together with deer-skin thongs, or whangs, as they were commonly called. In cold weather, these moc- casins were well stuffed with deer's hair or dry leaves, so as to keep the Sports and Pastimes of the Pioneers. 201 feet comfortably warm; but in wet weather it was usually said that wearing them was only 'a decent way of going barefooted,' and such, indeed, was the fact, owing to the spongy texture of the leather of which they were made. Owing to the defective covering of the feet more than to anything else, the greater number of hunters and warriors were afflicted with rheumatism in the limbs. Of this disease they were all apprehensive in cold or wet weather, and therefore always slept with their feet to the lire, to prevent or cure it as well as they could. This kept them from being confirmed cripples for life. In the latter years of the Indian war, our young men became more enamored of the Indian dress. The drawers were laid aside, and the leggins made longer, so as to reach the upper part of the thigh. The Indian breech-cloth was adopted. This was a piece of linen cloth, nearly a yard long and eight or nine inches broad, hanging before and behind over the belt, sometimes ornamented with coarse embroidery. To the same belt which secured the breech-cloth, strings, supporting the long leggins, were attached. When this belt, as was often the case, passed over the hunting shirt, the upper part of the thighs and part of the hips were naked. The young warrior, instead of being abashed by this nudity, was proud of his Indian dress. In some few instances I have seen them go into places of public worship in this dress. Their appearance, however, did not much add to the devotion of the young ladies. The linsey coats and bed gowns, which were the universal dress of our women in early times, would make a strange figure at this day. They knew nothing of the ruffles, leghorns, curls, combs, rings, and otner jewels with which the ladies now decorate themselves. Such tilings were not then to be had. Instead of the toilet, they had to handle the distaff or shuttle — the sickle or weeding hoe — contented if they could obtain their linsey clothing and cover their heads with a sun- bonnet made of six or seven hundred linen." The Sports and Pastimes of the Pioneers. " The sports of the pioneers were such as might be expected among a people who, owing to circumstances as well as education, set a higher value on physical than mental endowments and on skill in hunting and bravery in war, than any polite accomplishment or the fine arts. Many of the sports were imitative of the exercises and stratagems of hunting and war. Boys were taught the use of the bow and arrow at an early age, and acquired considerable adroitness in their use, so as to kill a bird or a squirrel. One important pastime of boys was that of imitat- 202 Our Western Border. ing the noise of every bird and beast of the woods. This faculty was not merely a pastime, but a very necessity of education, on account of its practical utility. Imitating the gobbling and other sounds of the wild turkey, often brought those watchful and keen-eyed tenants of the forest within reach of the rifle. The bleating of the fawn brought its dam to her death in the same way. The hunter often collected a company of mopish owls to the trees about his camp and amused him* self with their hoarse screaming. His howl would raise and obtain re- sponses from a pack of wolves so as to inform him of their whereabouts, as well as to guard him against their depredations. This imitative faculty was sometimes requisite as a measure of. pre- caution in war. The Indians, when scattered about in a neighborhood, often collected together by imitating turkeys by day and wolves by night. In similar situations our people did the same. I have often witnessed the consternation of a whole neighborhood in consequence of the screeching of owls. An early and correct use of this imitative faculty was considered as an indication that its possessor would become in due time a good hunter and a valiant warrior. Throwing the tomahawk was another boyish sport in which many acquired considerable skill. The tomahawk, with its handle of a cer- tain length, will make a given number of turns within a certain dis- tance j say, in five steps it will strike with the edge, the handle down- wards — at the distance of seven and a half it will strike with the edge, the handle upwards, and so on. A little experience enabled the boy to measure the distance with his eyes when walking through the woods, and to strike a tree with his tomahawk in any way he chose. A well- grown boy at the age of twelve or thirteen, was furnished with a small rifle and shot pouch. He then became a foot soldier and had his port- hole assigned him. Hunting squirrels, turkeys and raccoons, soon made him expert in the use of his gun. Shooting at a mark was a common diversion among the men when their stock of ammunition would allow it ; this, however, was far from being always the case. The present mode of shooting off-hand was not then in practice. This mode was not considered as any trial of a gun ; aor, indeed, as much of a test of the skill of a marksman. Their shoot- ing was from a rest, and as great a distance as the length and weight of the barrel of the gun would throw a ball on a horizontal level. Such was their regard to accuracy in those sportive trials of their rifles, and in their own skill in the use of them, that they often put moss or some other soft substance on the log or stump from which they shot, for fear of having the bullet thrown from the mark by the spring of the barrel. When the rifle was h